Escolar Documentos
Profissional Documentos
Cultura Documentos
The Soul
Promise
Ruby Bedi
Version Oct 31 09 Final 93, 615 words
“Call her a healer, call her an oracle, call her a mystic or a spiritual intuitive, Ruby Bedi defies definition.
In The Soul Promise she shares her incredible experiences of discovering her special gift, her own
spiritual identity, and the Promise she made as Soul before incarnating into this life. Her personal journey
of healing, growth and miracles will enlighten, teach, and inspire you. Read this book, and as you do you
may realize that you too are a divine being and have made a promise, and it is possible to awaken the
memory of that promise and begin to live it.”
Janet Matthews
Co-author of Chicken Soup for the Canadian Soul
Licensed Heal Your Life Workshop facilitator, based on the work of Louise Hay
Writer, Editor, Spiritual Mentor
“Reading The Soul Promise will be the best investment of time you have ever spent. Ruby Bedi has
changed my life and I consider her my spiritual guide. She can do the same for you.”
“Ruby Bedi is an original thinker whose ideas in the Soul of Promise may shock you but won’t fail to
stimulate your mind. A truly amazing woman who mixes her real life world of the entrepreneur with the
spiritual world of mysticism.”
Fred Langan
Novelist and CBC TV commentator and host, Toronto.
“The Soul Promise is an essential read for anyone with the desire to connect with their own greater
intelligence. Well done, Ruby…. an incredibly inspiring read of your extraordinary inner experiences.
The Soul Promise is a must read for anyone, no matter what the belief systems. I have no doubt this book
will move you into the present moment.”
“Having had the great pleasure of working with the world’s most renowned mystics, I can tell you first
hand that not only are Ruby’s abilities second-to-none, but more importantly, the intention behind her
work is as pure as the Soul that resides within us all. Ruby was the match that lit the spiritual fire that I
am today. After my first meeting with her, I was awakened to a thirst for the Truth about Life that has yet
to be quenched, nor can it be, nor do I want it to be. Ruby sparked the journey I began years ago that led
me to the inner peace and literally out-of-this-world awareness I so cherish today. I know that Ruby Bedi
is here to awaken the same magnificence within anyone with the opportunity to hear her life-altering
message. Not only is The Soul Promise a book you should read, but you owe it to your Soul-self to do
so.”
Daniel King
Visionary, Spiritual Teacher, Revolutionary
Promoter of Lightworkers
“Once I began to read Ruby’s amazing story, I could not put this book down. If you suspect there is a
reason you are here on this planet, but are simply not sure what it might be or how to discover it, Ruby
Bedi delivers the answers. As she shares the extraordinary inner experiences, stories and events that
make up the fabric of her life, we are forced into a paradigm shift about our own identity, and why we are
here. Read this book, and you will be changed!”
“The extraordinary events and experiences shared by author Ruby Bedi in The Soul Promises makes
reading it a sublime spiritual experience. It’s an excellent book to rejuvenate your faith in everything that
matters, and remind you of the importance of faith and God. Ruby Bedi - may God always guide you
through the Masters, and help you heal the world. This is a must read in these days of anger, bitterness
and hate. Share it with those you love, and help change their lives along with your own, forever.”
Suresh Menon
Bollywood Actor, Comedian and Radio Host
“The Soul Promise is an experience, a wonder you need to carry with you from this life to another making
the passage a simple crossover. Looking in the mirror I saw the beauty of Soul, and not the young
woman or her eyes or nose or mouth. This is the mirror that Ruby takes you through with her
explicit description of her visions and her Soul search. It is so generous of her to have shared her
miraculous insights with all of us.”
Dr. Shveta Uppal
Chief Editor, NCERT
(National Council for Education Research & Technology)
“Regardless of your religious affiliation, The Soul Promise delivers true spiritual wisdom and convinces
you of being a divine Soul. You can begin to live from that perspective right now. Author Ruby Bedi does
not hold back with her truth about who she is, and through her visions her Soul purpose in this life. The
road to spiritual enlightenment is an experience available to anyone ready to step up and follow the thread
of this inimitable piece.”
Sujata S. Sabnis
Writer and novelist
ISBN#
Foreword
Sometimes an individual enters your life and you immediately feel a deeper connection. You may
not be able to pinpoint or remember exactly where it came from, but you know in your heart and Soul that
you and this other person are walking down the same path, and have been doing so for many lifetimes.
Ruby Bedi may actually create this same kind of feeling in many people. In this lifetime alone
she has connected with so many individuals on different dimensions and levels of consciousness. God
only knows how many Souls she has shepherded closer to the light over her many sojourns through time
I knew right away I was here to assist with her book. There was no question of choice; it felt like
we had made an agreement before we both entered this world. We are kindred spirits, and working on the
same kind of mission so it was destined that our karmic paths would eventually cross when they did. And
When I read her life experiences I totally got it and understood what she was going through. It
was through this window into her Soul that I saw and experienced her life, which is truly a journey of
divine intervention and love. She walks a sacred path that few can follow, but all can marvel at and strive
to achieve. Her powers and abilities are not simply some gift of Divine grace, but have been developed
and earned over thousands of years of meditation, discipline, and devotion. In my mind’s eye I can see
her praying in remote ancient monasteries and cold mountain caves. Like the rest of us here she is not yet
free of her karmic debts, but she is certainly closer to the source of light than most.
Her personal accounts of her younger life are filled with much loneliness and despair. She
struggled through unhappy marriage, many life lessons and even faced death, but these experiences
served to bring her even greater insights into her own life and purpose. She is very human and very much
aware of pain, both emotional and physical. However, she has a sense of her place in this universe and
knows with certainty she is on a pre-ordained mission. And for the rest of us that is our mutual ticket to a
faster ride to the summit of our own mountains. With her intuitive advice and guidance she helps so many
by teaching them to climb higher and out of the valley of despair and sorrow.
This amazing book will give even further inspiration to those who have those sacred fires burning
within. Ruby is a beacon of light in a darkened world where the waves of stress and hopelessness smash
onto the shores of our rocky lives. I believe it will help many people find new directions for their own
lives. They will realize there are some things within all of us that simply cannot be fully explained – a
force of energy and love. Some call it God, but others may give it different names, it matters not. Ruby
has found a way to harness some of that loving energy and it shines from her like the sun in the sky.
Ruby truly loves people and it shows in how she works with others. Her life has been one of
service and devotion to those who are suffering emotionally or spiritually. She presents hope to the many
who seek out her spiritual advice. And it is this hope that brings the sunshine each morning to so many
lives that have benefited from her wise and sage advice.
As Ruby has pointed out to many before, there are no accidents in this universe; so if you are now
holding her book, then you are ready to hear her story. My dearest wish is that you find inspiration from
her life experiences and allow this to energize your own spiritual quest for life meaning and purpose.
I am both honored and humbled to write this foreword for her wonderful book.
W. H. McDonald Jr.
Author of A Spiritual Warrior’s Journey and other books.
Founder of “The American Author’s Association”
Documentary Film Maker, Motivational Speaker, Award Winning Poet, Minister, Former Radio Talk
Show Host, Vietnam War Veteran
Ruby
Table of Contents
Foreword …………………………………………………………………………………………5
Introduction ..............................................................................................................……………10
Prologue…………………………………………………..……………………………………..14
Chapter One
The Early Years……………………………………………………………………………...15
Grandfather Time……………………………………………………………..…..................19
My name calls out to me…………………………………………………………………….21
Om Baba ………….………………………………………………………… ……………..24
Chapter Two
The Family Years…………….……..………………………………………………………28
Marriage, Canada, Children, Divorce ...............................................................…................37
Starting Over………………………………………………………………………………..39
Madras Baba ......................................................................................................……………40
Chapter Three
The Awakening…………….……...………………………………………………………...44
The Gift Emerges……………………………………………………………………………48
Shirdi Sai Baba, Christ and my mission…………………………………………………….51
Begin working as a Spiritual Advisor .................................................................……………58
The Three Steps to Healing and the Masters………….………………………………….....64
Chapter Four
The Masters Put Me To Work….……………..…………………………………………….70
Prema’s Story .....................................................................................................… ………..71
Back to India – Pilgrimage to thank the Masters……………………………………………78
Monica’s story. ...................................................................................................…...............82
Dr. Noel, the Ghostbuster .................................................................................……………86
Chapter Five
Into the Valley of Death…………..………………………………………………………...88
Journey to Ladakh ………………………………………………………………………….92
Manifesting My Being .......................................................................................…………...97
Chapter Six…………………………………………………………………………………….100
I meet Ma ji …………………………………………………………………………….…105
Inder – my Soulmate…………………………………………………………....................107
Chapter Seven
The Serpent – Tryst with Tantrik Swami Kuber……………………………….…………114
Chapter Eight
The Wake Up Call (Ma ji asks for help)…...……………………………………...............125
The Four Pillars of Light Meditation . ...............................................................…………..141
Chapter Nine
Visions of Five Past Lives……………………………………………………...................145
Chapter Ten
Twenty-One Minutes to Freedom...………………………………………………………166
Vision of Mt. Everest......…………………………………………………………………167
Blessings from Ancestors…...……………………………………………………………171
Chapter Eleven
Raj’s Death …..……...……………………………………….…..................174
Invitation to a Special Soul Gathering …...……………….…………………..................177
Retrieving the Soul Promise..…. ......................................................................………….184
One Cell of Intelligence Vision.. ......................................................................………….186
Chapter Twelve
Monica Returns-June 2006………………………………………………………………..188
The Story of Priya Rajvansh and the Fakir………………………………………………..194
Chapter Thirteen
The Radio Interview with Adrienne………………………………...………………...…..208
My Father’s visit ................................................................................................………….210
The Death of Death……....………………………………………………………………..214
Vision of the Caged Tiger....………………………………………………………………217
All Lights On………..…….………………………………………………………………220
Chapter Fourteen
Living the Soul Promise..…..……………………………………………………………...224
A Soul Returns ...................................................................................................…………..226
The Soul Promise and Realization of Purpose ...…………………………………….….234
Chapter Fifteen
Miracles and More Miracles…….……………………………………………………..….237
Horace’s story. ...................................................................................................……….…238
The Mad Cowboy- Howard Lyman and Oprah………….……………..............................243
To You My Reader…….............................................................................................................255
Introduction
A single star splinters and trillions of light molecules fall and scatter in thousands of
directions at once. Such is the effect of a sudden flash of an enlightening experience upon the
human psyche. The splintering and scattering of light can affect us in many ways; it can make us
delusional, or schizophrenic, and sometimes, more aware. All three states are possible and very
real.
It was just such an experience that shocked my nervous system in 1992. I went to sleep
in one world and woke up in another, feeling as though I had been struck by lightning.
Trembling and shaking, I tried to find my bearings in a world where everything had changed.
Somehow, I was now linked to a higher level of awareness, intelligence, and perspective. It
seemed as though a new mind had birthed into me; suddenly, I was intuitive, inspired, and
connected.
Within three weeks, I had pulled down the shutters of my wholesale and retail business
and entered a new calling as a spiritual consultant. For the next ten years, I supported my clients
as they connected to their own Soul intelligence. But strangely enough, I did not experience a
full connection to my own. Instead, I felt disturbed and troubled, although few would ever have
guessed. The same starburst that had enabled me to bring others into awareness had blinded me.
I wished there was someone in my life like me, someone who could shed light upon Ruby.
But I was my only resource. Because I always wanted to understand more, I set up an
inner lab in my mind using my intellect and intuition as investigative tools. Here I conducted my
own research, first receiving information and then putting it to the test in the physical. As I
became more aware of my inner truths, my outer life began to change as it became a clearer
reflection of those truths. My relationships with others, along with every experience I invited
into my life, were now born out of this testing. In opposition to the outer directed culture I was
living in, I was soon living my life from the inside out. I had only one master, my own inner
voice.
The story that unfolds on these pages reveals in some detail my interactions with spiritual
masters, teachers, friends, and relatives who had passed away but have guided me by sharing
their wisdom from the other side. I am always in direct communication with beings from various
comprehend what I was seeing; I was not able to access everything available. But being
persistent and curious, I decided to push further. Soon I connected to an even higher level of
At the time I had no language to express any of this so I decided to simply watch and
observe. What I experienced in that wondrous space reminded me of a childrens’ movie about
Christmas Eve; the falling snow, a fireplace hung with stockings, a tree glittering with lights, and
children awaiting the arrival of Santa. It is always depicted as such a magical night, one that
The space I entered was that magical and filled with that much love. My awakened
awareness of these subtle realms enabled me to see events before, during, and after their making.
And I became aware that all these experiences or occurrences were being engineered by a highly
intentional force. This was my first introduction to the Soul. Although I had not yet fully
With one touch of Soul awareness, much of my previous conditioning fell away like a
snake shedding its skin and I stepped into a higher state of consciousness. From here I could see,
feel, touch, and experience the world beyond the physical level. I was able to connect with
subtle intelligence and use it to create health and healing for my clients.
In the year 2000, I re-entered the business world and partnered in real estate as a
developer. I wanted financial freedom so I would be free to help and support others. But
something was missing. And then I had another powerful experience that revealed the Soul in a
whole new way, further deepening my perspective. It was through this experience that I
The book you now hold in your hands is a fulfillment of my promise to reveal my own
journey to you, my reader. I have shared the facts to the best of my ability, but please keep in
mind the story is my personal interpretation of those facts. As well, for the sake of privacy, I
In order to add depth and authenticity, I have divulged aspects of my past and not all of it
is pretty. But the point of exposing my innermost self is to inspire others to look in the mirror
from a Soul perspective and connect with their real beauty, a beauty often hidden or disguised by
suffering. I have no shyness about admitting I did not like the person in the mirror until I
connected with myself as Soul. After that, the image I saw was simply breathtaking.
I have no desire to create hype in the world of spirituality. I offer no specific way, nor do
I declare a specific path or direction. My intention in writing this book is to inspire you to be in
touch with your own divinity – your own Soul intelligence. This divine intelligence was there
before you were born, and will continue after the death of your physical body. It is actually your
true identity. But not even the world’s greatest Magician, Saint, or Sage can fully see the Soul of
another being; at best, they get glimpses which may help us in a moment of crisis and guide us in
a particular direction. It is up to each of us to connect with our own essence, our own divinity -
the radiant whisper of Soul that is calling us home to our original promise in this lifetime.
Writing this book may have been the most enlightening experience of all. The process of
digging deep and examining truth as it happened, as it was perceived, and as it transformed into a
mental and physical reality awakened an awareness and a new creative flow that has helped me
communicate more deeply with others, manifest better health, create more abundance, and
connect more consistently with my Soul. I now know there is a way to live without hanging onto
the traditional structure of religion, philosophy, and culture. It is the way of the Soul, and there
are as many ways as there are Souls. This story is simply about my way. It is my hope that it
will inspire you to find yours, and if it does, then my promise is fulfilled.
Prologue
It is 3:30 am. The room is cold, and the single wall light does little to dispel the darkness.
“Please, check again!” orders Tai ji, my father’s aunt. “It should be a boy! Those pundits
can’t have been wrong,” she insists. “Faqir Chand (my father) does not deserve this. A fourth
“Tai ji, please,” interrupts the doctor, trying to minimize the damage. “Take some rest.
With an unusual awareness, I watch and remember my own birth. I experience my first
breath, my first cry, and the sadness of my mother’s tears. A dark cloud hangs over the entire
room. My mother’s moans and groans of despair reach out - down the long corridor into every
She is not alone; all other female relatives including the servants shed tears of pain. All
hope of having a male child is in this moment forever lost. I am given a Hindi name, Kapila, a
Without blame, I feel the burden of shame and guilt and unfulfilled desire, and in the
midst of sorrow I make a promise; one day I will make everyone proud of me. I am not just a
girl, nor a loss but a gain for humanity. I shall! I will! I was ready, determined, and prepared.
My story begins with this conscious memory of my birth along with determination, joy,
and exhilaration. A brand new life! A new opportunity, another chance to manifest my dream.
Chapter One
The Early Years
“Within the heart of every seeker lies unborn the seed of true desire; as contagious and
devouring as it may be, it is what awakens the sleeping soul to a life of mindful living.”
Born of East Indian parents at a time when a male was still considered to be a worthier
sex than a female, I had the experience of arriving as the fourth daughter. Although my father,
Faqir Chand, was an open-minded man, a prominent lawyer with a successful practice in New
Shukla, my mother, was traumatized, and made no attempt to hide her disappointment.
After I was born she went under and covered herself in deep depression. I have no memories of
my mother ever touching, feeding, or dressing me. I do recall being placed by her side, looking
at her and wanting to touch her, but my tiny arms couldn’t reach her. Periodically, she would
bend down and look at me, and drop a few salty tears on my face. This is how I remember the
taste of my mother’s love. I found comfort in her tears. The taste of the salt reminded me how
I remember the images from my birth. A cold winter morning, a dark room, the loud
cries of a blood soaked baby being wrapped in cotton and a black shawl. The silent wailing of
the mother, disapproving grunts from relatives, the look of pity and disappointment, the whispers
of sorrow and pain as my birth was announced, the dark night, the sadness, and the cracked
mirror crookedly hanging off the wall. The most colourful image of all was that of a calendar of
Lord Shiva which hung on another wall. The third eye was lit with red and gold fire pouring out
Those images were imprinted in my psyche before I could hear, speak, or walk. People
don’t realize that a newborn baby absorbs the environment and creates its own truth through
perception, more than just the five senses. A mother’s womb is a safe place for a determined soul
but not strong enough to resist the external influences. A newborn baby can sense disapproval as
easily as it can feel the warmth of love. Each image I saw quickly created a story I would have
to live for most of my life. The story was not formed in an instant, but developed with every
touch or lack of touch, every feeling, and everything I saw and heard. The story I created was
my interpretation of those events. Who can say if it was real or not, but to me it was real and it
The joy of watching, touching, feeling, hearing, and simply being alive was exhilarating,
yet I felt the pain of coming into this life. I was a burden, unwelcome, unlucky , and unworthy.
I brought pleasure to no one; rather, I was the source of pain. I was uninteresting and uneventful.
I celebrated my birthdays with a bittersweet combination of joy, guilt, and shame. It was just
another day of fear and gut throbbing anxiety. Tears welled up easily and soon I would find a
reason to cry, yet somewhere in the midst of pain was a young heart beating with excitement.
Each year that passed confirmed my fears that nothing would change, yet abandoning hope was
From the moment of my birth, I had a conscious awareness of watching. I felt a constant
surge within me, like being plugged to a source or feeling, something constantly brewing inside.
It was only much later that I would recognize the dream gestating within me. The dream, as
much as it was personal, would connect to everyone and everything within my sphere of
experience. The little bundle of life force, energy, and intelligence that I was had come with a
specific plan. I held a secret that would unfold in time. I was blessed with a special gift that
would bring pleasure, peace, and abundance to many. But I had no idea when, where, or how
I was brought up by a Buddhist nanny, Bindu, cared for me until I was four at which time
she returned to her home in Nepal to visit her sick mother. Along with her, she took my sense of
security and love. When she left I shed wrapped my arms around her thighs and sobbed
profusely in her sari. “Bindu, you can’t leave. You said you would always be with me,” I cried
and only let go after she promised to return after visiting her mother. Bindu left me with hope
and a promise. I would fall asleep each night with tears rolling down my cheeks, missing her
touch and warmth. The new help my parents hired was not nearly as comforting as Bindu. I
learned to sleep with loneliness and awaken with sadness, a pattern that would last for years to
come.
As I grew, with each passing day the conscious knowledge of my special gift faded and
was slowly replaced by an intuitive knowing. This knowing was accompanied by a strong inner
voice I could hear, feel, and touch. The voice guided me silently and kept me alert. It cautioned
me in times of danger and helped me engage in experiences where I could grow, develop, and
evolve.
It is hard to tell when I started to believe in the existence of the Soul. I often found
myself engaged in conversations with things and people who were not always physically present.
It was natural for me to have a discussion with a rose, a mango tree, the crow that sat on the
electric wire connecting the streetlamps, or anything else. I would question, reason, laugh, get
angry, or just be silly. I was full of life, and often busy with these silent conversations. I became
aware that I could listen, watch, and be engaged all in one moment. The thoughts and unspoken
words of others were fully available to me, along with their feelings. I often had an awareness of
events before they occurred. It was many years before I discovered that not everyone had these
same gifts of perception, and what was natural for me was extraordinary to others.
One day I realized there was usually a difference between what people thought and felt,
and what they actually said, and at that point my gift became a major source of confusion. I
stopped trusting, and my little world became convoluted with complexity and duality. When I
communicated internally I felt one with everything, but when dealing externally I felt the
opposite. I recognized the link between all things, and despite the invisible connection, I knew
I learned from the gardener. He would walk into the garden with a smile greeting
everyone, and by everyone I mean the plants and trees he cared for. He looked at the plants,
touched the soil, felt the leaves and petals. He watched for changes, sometimes staring at the sky
looking for signs. He would mumble, ask questions and respond, and there were times when I
watched him discipline the green beings. He was in control from within. I would try to enter his
world and pick up on his inner communication. Eight out of ten times, I could tap into his mind
and pick up the silent communication. I found him amusing, loving the fact that he had very
little stimuli from outside. I fell in love with the lifestyle that was inwardly inspired. With
neither a visible agenda nor a philosophy, the garden thrived and so did the gardener.
After my birth, my parents became increasingly distant from each other. This silent war
began killing any ability I had to love, trust, and have faith. I wanted to be with them, but did
not want to get in their way. I felt responsible for their situation so I withdrew into a shell.
A split began to develop between who I truly was and what I was feeling. Inside my little
self I had a feeling of being special. Within me there was a knowing, bright and warm, that I
was lucky, and could bring that luck with joy and inspiration to others. I felt I was a blessing,
that I was brave, courageous, and strong. I knew I was born to do something, and that something
would be revealed to me when the time came. This knowing kept me aloof from others,
separated but very in touch with myself. I needed to remain tuned to the inner channel so I could
But on the outside I felt quite the opposite. My need for attention and approval made me
greedy, self-conscious, and self-centred. Between these two beliefs lay an ever-widening chasm
– an unknown space I could not fathom. I felt guilty. I loved myself, but when I looked in the
mirror I could not see that love, and it was a very painful experience. The images of my first
impressions of life ran deep. They became imprinted on my face, and this is how I grew to live
on the surface. Just how this story of love and hate would become my destiny was beyond my
imagination.
“The deeper you go, the more aware you will become.”
Life was not the same after Bindu left. I was sad and scared. There was no one else who
could penetrate my shell and enter within. And then a new friend arrived. One night I was
engrossed in knee-deep communication, talking away loudly when I heard a voice from nearby.
When I looked up I found an elderly man sitting on the other twin bed in my room.
“A friend,” he replied gently. I was not irked or surprised, and he seemed increasingly
familiar.
“I have been with you for a long time, and now it is time for you to see me,” he
continued.
“Are you God,” I asked? “Are you the one I often talk to? Is it you who tells me
“Yes, and no,” he replied. “In time you will find out what you want to know. I am here
to comfort you and let you know you are not alone. I have been, and will be, with you always.”
Sensing my need for assurance, he continued, “You can call me by any name. I will show you
everything and teach you what I know. We will walk, talk, and go many places together.”
With these few words, a deep connection was established. To me he appeared ancient,
wise, kind, and strong. I felt like he knew everyone and everything, even God. I called him
Grandfather Time because I felt him to be the timekeeper, a witness to everything that had and
I would be alone in my room or playing somewhere, and he would simply appear and we
would talk for hours. And he came and went from my life. Sometimes he would be with me for
months, and then years would pass with no word from him. He would often sit by my side and
tell me stories about cosmic happenings, planetary crossovers, elemental interceptions, and
nature spirits. He took me time-travelling with him. He taught me how to enter different
dimensions, frequencies, and vibrations, and how to access and retrieve information from the
past, present, and future. He introduced me to the elements like we were old friends. Here I
learned to set up a connection or a frequency line with the stars, planets, and galaxies, after
Grandfather Time made everything simple and interesting, and I loved his interpretations.
Talking to him was like talking to God. He knew the secret to every mystery and had the key for
every door. He was a storyteller and I became part of every story he told me.
“Everyone can hear you,” he taught me, “but only those you befriend will listen. Respect
and love them all, and they will always be there to serve you. Opposing them will result in break
down. Once you lose the connection, you will no longer be able to communicate with them.
This goes for all things including beings. The space, earth, water, and air are all your friends;
they will keep you healthy. All intelligence will guide you, and all energy will present you with
the life force you require to create your world.” Soon, I had many friends.
He asked me to see living as an act of love, relationships as friendships, and giving and
receiving as exchanging gratitude and compassion. As the years passed, he pushed me to reach
deeper into my being. “The deeper you go, the more aware you will be,” he would say.
I loved him deeply, and always wanted his company. Whenever I had a meltdown or a
heartbreak he would be there to hold, caress, and comfort me. I remember one day when I was
really having an all out tantrum, I accused him of not being present for me. “Where are you when
“In your tears,” he said softly. “When you cry I comfort and touch you. I am with you
I cried and cried, but this time with love and understanding. I did not want to wipe off my
tears because I did not want him to go away. I would often sleep with them on a long lonely
night. To this day, I think of Grandfather Time as my dear friend, confidant, and wise mentor.
Because of this precious connection, when I was only four my true name surfaced from within
me.
“Do not call me that any more,” I said to my mother. At four, I was adamant and
“But you already have a name,” my mother replied. “We gave it to you when you were
born.”
“But all my friends will be waiting for me,” I persisted, more firm than before. “And
they will look for Ruby. They won’t recognize me if you call me by any other name.”
“They are people I am supposed to meet. They are everywhere, and they will find me
It was only a week later that I began school, and on the first day the teacher asked, “What
is your name?”
“Ruby Bedi,” I replied with determination. My voice was loud and clear and heard by all
in the classroom. At four I did not know who I was and what I would do, but the one thing I did
know was that I must be Ruby Bedi. And on that day I let go of the name given to me at my
birth forever. As much as this was my first act of free will, my true spiritual self ordained the
name from within. I believe it contains the blueprint, design, and artwork of who I am as a
This was my first inspired action to fulfilling my Soul Promise. With this, the four-year-
old child stepped into a life that would later shape into a destiny.
Out of loneliness and from my travels with Grandfather Time arose a beautiful gift; the
ability to communicate with all. I created my little world, remained invisible, and from then on I
“Chicky,” I would often silently order our three year old German Shepherd, “you must
drink all my milk and make sure no one catches you.” I would then lower the glass of milk and
Chicky, who was under the table, would then obediently drink from the glass without any
spillage. We were not allowed to leave the dining table without drinking a full glass of milk, and
“Milk is essential,” declared my old aunt. “It will make your skin soft and white.” Of
course, there was no way milk would do that, and no one dared question my old aunt’s wisdom.
For years Chicky saved me from drinking the hot milk, and all that milk did not turn him white
Amongst my other friends were birds who kept me informed of needed events, and
passed messages back and forth. I could piggyback on them and see whatever I needed to see.
My friend, the crow, while perched on the electric wire on the lamp post across the street, would
inform me of upcoming events. “Stay awake, there is a special friend arriving at eleven o’clock
Another dear friend was the eagle. She was majestic and grand and she flew me to any
place, space, or country and revealed many a secret. And in order to understand what I was
summer nights the entire family would sleep under the stars, either in the garden or the open
courtyard. Beds would be laid out side by side and made up with white linen. Mango, banana,
and papaya trees stood guard, while gentle breezes carried the scents of jasmine and rose. The
night was exhilarating and tempting, the dark skies alive and smiling with stars, all making sleep
impossible for me. It was then I realized there was an infinite intelligence in space, and I could
tap into various forms of energy including stars, planets, and galaxies and have a heartfelt
conversation. Everything had a story and was eager to share it with me.
Much later in life I was introduced to astrology, but as a young girl I knew the influence
that planets had upon us. I had no fear of asking and I felt no one would deny me anything. I
could have or get what I wanted as long as I remembered that all living things, big and small,
were there for a reason, including me, and as such were to be respected.
Looking back, I can see that no time was wasted before I would adopt beliefs that would
guide and direct me on my life path. It is obvious now that from very early on, the experiences I
attracted were preparing me for my life’s work. Each experience made me more conscious and
aware of the Soul. I was about to learn another lesson, and this time it was about life and death
and more.
Before the age of nine, I had become aware of both the physical and subtle states, and the
interwoven connection between them. Any illusions I may have had were removed on the day I
met our revered guru and guide, Om Baba, after his passing over.
Om Baba1 passed away at the ripe old age of one hundred and ten years. He was an
enlightened Soul who by choice had become a Yogi. After spending over seventy years in the
jungles of Madhya Pradesh living amongst the wildlife, he settled in Old Delhi and soon came to
Om Baba needed very little. He lived on fresh fruit and tea and refused house visits or
any gifts and favours. I am not quite sure of his religious practices; I heard him chanting mantras
as he sat in front of a small urn with a fire. Wearing only a white loincloth, he would sit cross-
legged and listen to what was being said. He responded with few words, and gave each visitor
some holy ashes from the burning fire. No matter what he said, it came true. Everyone seeing
him desired something - a male child, better health, longer life, a loyal husband, a kind mother-
1
Baba used this way is used as a mark of respect to Sufi saints and Hinduism ascetics (sannyasi) and can also be
used as a suffix or prefix to their names. (Wikipedia)
Unlike everyone else, he would ask simply, “Baba, what can I do for you?”
“Bedi saheb,” he replied, “I do not want anything from you, except that my last rites be
handled with your money.” This was quite an honour for my father.
I was only about five years old the first time my mother took me to see Baba.
“Baba,” she began, “Bubbli (my nickname) is suddenly stuttering, and she is scared to be
alone. She says she sees people and things when they are not there. She thinks ghosts are
After listening carefully to her words, with eyes half open Baba gazed right through me.
“I know who she is Shukla, and she will need protection. Her gift can be hazardous with
premature awakening.” With this, he handed my mother a bit of holy ash wrapped in a piece of
old newspaper. Then looking at me, he said, “Child, wear this on your body always. Repeat the
Gayatri Mantra inwardly as many times as you think of it. The Divine Mother e will protect you
I felt better instantly. My stuttering stopped and I stopped seeing people or things that
frightened me. I wore the ash wrapped in a royal blue cloth twenty-four/seven, and for the next
I took to the mantra like a bee to honey; the more I chanted, the more it grew on me. I
had a new friend, the Divine Mother. As the years passed, we talked, argued, and laughed
together. It didn’t matter where I was or what I was doing, as long as I was in the company of
Then when I was nine, the most extraordinary thing happened. It was about three o’clock
on a cold cloudy afternoon in January. The servants had retired to their quarters for the hour, and
both the front and back doors to the house were locked. Suddenly the two family dogs began to
bark and there was a commotion in the corridor. Assuming it was a servant, we ignored the
noise. Suddenly the bedroom door opened fully, and in walked Om Baba. My mother and I both
“Baba! How come? I mean, we did not know you were coming!” My mother was
clearly shocked and confused. Not once during the last five years had Baba stepped out of his
tiny room.
“Fine Baba, very fine,” she replied. “I cannot believe it. Baba what can we get for you?”
And then without pausing, she ordered me to fetch the servants to serve tea and fruit. My mother
“Shukla, please. I don’t need anything at all. I promised once that I would visit you at
“Child,” he said, looking at me, “no one bothers you now, do they? I can see that you
“Yes, Baba, I talk to her all the time,” I was shy to answer.
“God bless you!” he repeated a few times. Baba kept us engaged for a good fifteen
minutes, after which I ran off to call the servants. But there was no sign of anyone around and
Then I heard my mother’s voice, “Baba! Please wait!” She rushed out to the corridor
“Where is Baba? I told him to wait until the servant brought him a tonga2, but he just
hurried out. Check the doors, he can’t be far!” she screamed, rushing toward the front door.
2
A tonga is a horse buggy - it was common to travel by tonga to Old Delhi.
I didn’t see him and neither did anyone else. The servants were sent to check the street
Half an hour later, my father returned from his work at the courts to find everyone at his
home still in surprise and shock. There was no way to reach Baba that day.
The next morning a stranger came to our door seeking my father. “Bedi Sahib, I have sad
news. Yesterday morning at ten o’clock, Om Baba left for the heavenly abode. He left a note
with your name and address. Baba’s last rites must be performed, and he gave instructions that it
A chilling shock washed over the room. “It can’t be,” my mother screamed. “He was
here, in our house! He sat with us for twenty minutes! Bubbli saw him too. He blessed us
both!”
“Memsahib,” replied the stranger, “there must be a mistake. I was with Baba in the
“Baba came back to fulfill his promise and to bless us,” he said quietly. With tears in his
eyes he asked the man to make the best arrangements possible. “I will see you at the cremation
Baba did pass away before ten o’clock the previous morning. Baba did come to our
house at three o’clock that same afternoon and we did meet him in full body presence after his
death. His coming in through locked doors and disappearing mysteriously were frightening and
shocking to me, but truly a blessing for my parents. Very soon after this amazing event, I would
accept death not as an end but as another turning. I now knew that not even death can stop a
Chapter Two
The Family Years
Despite being born of a Sikh father and a Hindu mother and having had a Buddhist
Nepalese caregiver, my parents decided to send me to the most prestigious school in New Delhi,
the Convent of Jesus and Mary, where I was now taught by Catholic nuns. Here I was
introduced to Jesus Christ and Mother Mary. To say I grew up with multi-religious influences
would be an understatement!
I was always looking for shortcuts as I found studies hard and boring. Despite having a
home tutor five times a week, I barely passed. My monthly report was full of words like,
“unsatisfactory, poor, very poor,” all except for moral science which was generally “very good.”
However, I did manage to pass every year and this was because early on I discovered a secret.
A few days prior to a final exam I would list the fifteen most important questions, six of
which would certainly be on the exam. Next I would close my eyes, envision the Divine Mother
and chant the Gayatri Mantra five times. This connected me to the other side. I would then run
my finger down the list and wherever I felt energy, I would stop and circle until I had circled six
questions. Then I would stay up at night and study five out of those six questions. This formula
never failed. I was usually eighty percent correct, and managed to pass with sixty-five to seventy
“Stop pushing the girl Shukla! We don’t want her to be Indira Gandhi!3 What man wants
3
Indira Gandhi was the former Prime Minister of India, then broadcasting minister.
Of course, she never said this in my father’s presence. “Men don’t respect stupid
women,” my mother would reply. “I am going to get the girls married early. I feel so stuck to this
house! I can’t go anywhere. Then I am going to Haridwar (a holy city) and will retire there. I
am tired of this world. I want to retire and be with God.” This is how she threatened my father
Let no one ever say that simplicity is simple, at least not in an Indian household. It is
more complex than one can imagine, especially when the family includes uncles, aunts, cousins,
friends, and of course, neighbours. I grew up in a noisy extensive family with friends and distant
relatives, each one with an opinion. A hearty conversation meant everyone talking loudly at
each other simultaneously. As if this was not enough, there were ten to fifteen servants, maids,
chefs, chauffeurs, and some security. We had two dogs, and they did not hold back either,
Twenty-two Ferozeshah Road, New Delhi was my home, and a hub and haven for many
relatives. My father’s wealth and kindness and my mother’s warmth and generosity made it so.
Despite the personal conflict between them, they would resolve conflict for others. We hosted
eight weddings at our house each lasting a few weeks. Our servants called our home a hotel with
I learned to share and give early; birthdays were a special affair that went on the entire
year. The day started with the family astrologer coming to recite prayers and bless us. We
would then visit the Hindu or Sikh temple and donate money to the needy. Then we would
accompany our mother to the blind school where we would distribute gifts like blankets and
sweaters to every blind child. That evening, the chef would our make our favourite dishes for
dinner, and of course we had a huge birthday party for school friends. I loved the day and felt
special, yet I usually awoke uneasy that day. I always wondered if the birthday ritual was being
celebrated because my parents were truly happy to have me, or was it being forced upon them?
Either way, I felt the joy of being born and was proud and happy to be part of the family.
On my second day at school, I bought a small picture of the Mother Mary holding Baby
Jesus. I saw it as sort of a bribe. As I knew God could see everything, my buying pictures and
Home life was full of activities, especially religious and spiritual. Once a month we
invited a Sikh priest from the Gurudwara, the Sikh temple, for Kirtan.4 Every Sunday after
family yoga, we had Puja, a fire ceremony with a priest chanting Sanskrit mantras. Then, once
every few days I paid a visit to Christ at the chapel, which was located in the school compound.
I lit a candle for better grades - of course without having to study! I also accompanied my
mother, along with a few other friends and relatives, to discourses held by enlightened teachers
and masters. My mother insisted the wise ones bless our home, so we had the privilege of
meeting many sages personally. These revered teachers often shared their wisdom through story
telling. I didn’t understand it all, but I would catch the story and take off with it. I would enter
the story and imagine myself present with the other characters, and in this way I had direct
experience of what was being taught. I would have my own dialogue and come to my own
conclusions.
After the discourses, I made it a habit to touch the Guru’s feet and ask for blessings. I
loved blessings. Every direct interaction molded me ever so slightly, and certainly every
4
Kirtan: Singing praises to God.
visitation helped develop a new way to look at things. Since the stories we heard were about
Indian Godheads, prophets, poets, Buddha, and enlightened masters, I thought it best to get to the
top and hear it straight from the horse’s mouth. I would quickly set up a connection with
Buddha or Christ or any other master, ask direct questions, and then put their wisdom to the test.
The results were startling. I got proof and along with it, a newer way to perceive. I truly began
to believe in someone or something that was on my side, watching over me and caring for me.
I cherished every meeting with wise ones, both in the physical and subtle realms. I often
wished I was free of chores and school so I could just live off the inner communication. If my
mother’s dream was to fulfill her responsibilities and then take off to Haridwar to be close to
God, then why couldn’t I do the same now? Why should I work hard to build a complicated life
with activities and people, and then after all that, work on becoming detached? Embarking on a
long journey of hard work and then later giving it up to be simple made no sense to me. But I
was still young; what did I know about life? I learned to turn off such thoughts and keep my
mouth shut; being the youngest of the four daughters did not qualify me for an opinion.
I learned early to question and doubt all external information and take everything with a
grain of salt. Only if it made sense inside, it was real. My inner communication and connection
was warm, kind, loving, and effortless. But that was not the case with the external, where I had
to fight to establish my identity, fight for love and for approval. To just get noticed meant
having to go over so many others who were older, louder, and bolder. The pretense and drama
required just to be noticed made me insecure, sad, and angry. The anger was directed more at
me rather than others. As much as I took refuge in crying, I hated seeing tears in my eyes. I also
noticed I could change the way I felt just by looking into the mirror, which brought an instant
halt to feeling sad or even bad. I would wipe off my tears, saying to myself, “It’s okay, you have
Moments like those actually set me free and lightened the burden. In fact, I felt at my
best. I would take full responsibility, do everything because I wanted to and not because I was
being ordered or asked. I was like a self-governing machine with the engines turned on. At
these times I felt a force pour out of me, and I gave the best performance.
My sixth sense improved a lot with Om Baba’s mantras. The more I recited them, the
better I became. I developed the empathic ability to check how people around me were feeling.
I noticed almost everyone I met felt a certain way, but expressed something else. I came to
believe they were either purposely lying, or were thoroughly confused. Seeking answers I would
Shukla, My Mother
As much as my mother’s spiritual influence helped me find inner peace, her nervous
mind would soon destroy that peace. She suffered from the ‘abandoned wife syndrome’ and
could not feel my father’s love. She started by feeling low, then she became depressed, and then
finally very sick. She developed bad nerves, hypertension, and diabetes. I would be by her side
comforting her, but with time the disease got worse. I felt responsible because it was after my
birth that things got really out of hand. Not fully realizing it, I had started to share her feelings -
both of faith and mistrust. She connected me to God but the connection was through pain, a
My father was another story altogether. Although I recall few direct conversations or
interactions with him, he was one person I did not need to check; to me he was real inside and
out, and I adored him. He had a unique relationship with the Divine. Every morning after his
bed tea, he would dress and go to the Sikh temple. He would bring back the Prasad,5 in this case
blessed Halwa, an Indian sweet, to share with everyone in the household including the servants
and dogs. I often saw my father bow his head in surrender, but he never prayed or asked for
anything. Instead, he would ask the visiting priests and gurus if they needed anything. He rarely
mentioned ‘God’, and I seldom heard him discuss philosophy or any ideology. He never spoke
My father worked a long day. He practiced company law and was a renowned divorce
lawyer. His phone rang every few minutes which disturbed everyone but him. His clients
resolving conflict through mediation; litigation would be the last resort. Evenings, he would
share drinks of scotch before dinner with any houseguests, and this is when we might become
privy to his most interesting interludes. His stories were of greed, deceit, and corruption; the
characters all lacked wisdom and intelligence. To this day, I believe my father opened the hearts
of many and brought them wisdom and knowledge. He empowered and inspired everyone he
met. He often said, “Give the client enough time to went out and they will respond with
wisdom.”
He provided us with everything, and that is considered being a good father in the eastern
tradition, but he rarely spoke directly to me. He once received a call from my school principal.
Apparently, the parent’s signature on my report card was suspicious. That month I’d had an
6
Prasād: Sanskrit: is both a mental condition of generosity, as well as a material substance first offered to a deity (in Hinduism)
and then consumed (Hinduism and Sikhism). Literally, a gracious gift. Anything, usually edible, given by a saint, Perfect Master
or the Avatar to their followers. The Prasad has the deity's blessing residing within it. Wikipedia
exceptionally bad report and, afraid to show it to my parents, I had signed my mother’s name.
“Mr. Bedi, this is Mother Catherine from the Convent of Jesus and Mary. We have
reason to believe that your daughter, Ruby, forged her mother’s signature on her monthly report
card. When can you come to the school to meet with me?”
Before she could continue my father interjected, “Sorry, you must have the wrong Bedi.
That evening at home, my mother did not miss the opportunity to confront him.
“You have no interest in your home,” she began. “You don’t even know your daughter’s
name or her grade! What good is having all this money when you have no time for your
family?” My father smiled back, “When did Bubbli become Ruby?” My mother just gave up.
My mother’s nagging and complaining grew worse with time, but I was still proud to be
my father’s daughter. I would listen when my mother tried to influence me against him, but
inside my mind was made up. I loved my father; I wanted his intelligence and wisdom. Along
with his rich brown complexion and glowing skin, I desired to be famous and wealthy like him.
I wanted to be humble like him, but more than anything I wanted his peace, strength, and
courage. I wanted to hug him and express my love for him, but the guilt that I may have robbed
him of his last opportunity to have a son held me back. Even though he never expressed it, I
believed that blame must be there. I hung around him like a little puppy, especially on Sundays,
“Daddy, Daddy, I want to be like you. I want to do something good and make you proud
of me. I have decided I will always keep my last name, Bedi, and then everyone will know I am
your daughter,” I announced as I plucked out the only silver hair from his eyebrow.
“How can that be?” he responded. “Your name will change after you marry, and then
“Then I will leave him.” I was determined that the only way to be my father’s daughter
While growing up, I shared my bed, room, clothes, house, even my schoolbooks, but the
one thing I shared with no one was the secret of my inner world. No one knew of my
connection, communication, or my inner friends. I wasn’t sure if others would believe me, and
as I was constantly struggling for attention, I did not want to endanger my credibility.
The split, however, was becoming deeper between the internal and the external. One
Ruby was consistently going through moods and motions of change- she was happy or sad,
peaceful then restless, but the other Ruby was free of emotion and sentiment. She was part of
something big; she felt the connectedness and flowed with communication. For a girl not yet in
her teens the two worlds were overwhelming, and I experienced both states simultaneously.
In my inner world I fit perfectly. I knew the ground rules and the operating principles
and was compatible with the creating force. I was an observation in myself also a natural mover
of energy and transformation. The inner world was lighter, full and friendly. There was no
question or doubt, just a force and a flow. It was a true sense of belonging. It was home.
The external world was different. I had to behave a certain way to be seen and be liked.
I needed to prove and struggle to secure myself. I had to compete and do better than others.
Aggression and oppression were natural phenomena here; everyone kept their houses and hearts
locked. Communication was muffled and unclear, vision was shortsighted, and thinking blurred.
What was natural in the inner world was effort here. I felt divided, and the split was tearing me
apart. Without realizing it, I was falling through the cracks. I developed asthma and severe
I had a burning desire to be alone, but feared being alone. I was fearful of entering some
space and not being able to come back. What if this is all in my head, I wondered? What if I
lose my mind? I began to feel crazy, and this is when something crashed and I fell deep into
darkness. The first signs of depression were feelings of dejection, loss of interest, cynicism, lack
of joy, lethargy, and silent rebellion. They went unnoticed for a while until I began to manifest
the physical symptoms. My sick days and visits to the doctors increased. Neither allopathic nor
homeopathic medicine helped. This pattern was familiar, I was acting like my mother. The
beautiful secret that had once empowered me became the curse that would stay with me for
years. I began saying things I did not mean; I was not true to others or myself. I yearned for a
friend I could be totally honest with. I was becoming like others I neither trusted nor liked.
All through school, I followed my secret formula to secure enough marks to enter another
grade. At the beginning of each school year, I always worked hard with a structured discipline.
I promised myself I would study each day, each week, and each month. I was certainly capable,
but I was not strong enough to fight the lethargy induced by depression. At times I would
become possessed by an idea of becoming something, but it was always short lived.
As I grew, so did my parents’ problems. By now, my mother was at war with my father.
He began coming home later and later and would leave early. My mother’s neurosis got worse.
She began having severe panic attacks and her blood pressure rose to a record high. I stood by
her side and watched her suffer. Between all the emergencies, summoning doctors, chasing my
father and demanding he return home immediately, I would console my pain-stricken mother. I
cried with her and for her. But no matter how much care and attention I offered, it was not
enough. I found ways to cope with pain; hers and mine. All my sisters were now married and I
was the only one still at home. But despite constant threats, my mother never left my father or
went to Haridwar. She surrounded herself with a full-time nurse, and because of either the
I was now eighteen and it was at this very low and desperate point that I agreed to an
arranged marriage with my second cousin. It all happened very quickly. Within three weeks of
meeting him, I was engaged and then married. A few months later, I landed in Calgary, Alberta,
Canada to start my new life. It was 1969. With me, I had a new wardrobe with the choicest
jewellery, a new person who would offer me the life many could only dream of, and going to
North America could bring about the freedom I desired. I was thrilled and ecstatic when nine
arrived, so did my depression. Again, I started to lose interest, and this time fell even deeper into
the cracks. I made excuses, lied, and the pretence soon became the veil I hid behind. I began
having migraine headaches. The allergies returned with a passion and I found refuge in sickness
and now had a good reason to withdraw and hide from others. Eventually, I thought perhaps
having another child might help. Seven years after Rachna, I gave birth to my daughter, Sona.
Holding her in my arms, I squeezed her tiny hand in mine and she responded with a gentle
squeeze. I knew then that I would not be able to hide for too long, sooner or later I would have to
accept my responsibilities and make responsible choices. This realization triggered more stress
and anxiety and despite two beautiful girls, a comfortable family life, and a beautiful custom-
built home on a hilltop, I was sad and felt helpless and out of control. I really did not know what
was wrong. I kept looking for the wrong, and it was during this time that I lost my mother. She
was only sixty-one when the hypertension, diabetes, and debilitating depression finally took
over. One day she closed her eyes and was gone. It was the end of an era of pain and suffering.
Seeking help for depression, I requested a family friend, a general surgeon with a busy
practice to help me, which he did. He offered to help me with hypnosis. Soon he was
hypnotizing me, prescribing medication, and giving me plenty of personal attention. In sessions
with him, he concluded the root of my suffering was probably my husband and poor marriage. I
was already feeling caged in an institution where I had no freedom to explore my being. My
young husband was bound in traditions, and had no interest in his wife being an independent
woman exploring some unknown familiarity. It felt good to find a reason and the longer I
In my inner heart, I felt responsible for creating the circumstances that would justify a
separation. In a few honest moments, I could admit it was not my marriage or my husband, but
me who was sick. The two minds were battling, and between the two thoughts I became confused
and crazy. Now I had developed a severe sleeping disorder and suffered from panic and anxiety
attacks. Although my breakdown seemed sudden, the truth is it had been building for more than
fifteen years before I collapsed, by the end of which I was alone. In 1986, after eighteen years,
my marriage dissolved and I also walked away from my doctor friend. I had no work but a bad
nervous breakdown. I became physically fatigued with joint pain and ended up gaining thirty
more pounds.
Now I had good reason to cry, which I did heartily. Despite the freedom I now had, it
was the beginning of extreme humiliation and shame. I was burdened with guilt and felt
responsible for the entire breakdown. I was ridiculed and looked down upon by my family and
community. The pain and emotional suffering that followed took root and began manifesting in
my physical body. I began developing symptoms that could not be understood or even
diagnosed. I was ashamed that despite my earlier connection with Spirit, and still having some
awareness, I could not save myself from this disaster. I created suffering for myself and two
other innocent Souls. I could not escape the silent pain in Rachna’s face and the distress and fear
in Sona’s big piercing eyes. I knew I had to do something soon to save my family from further
destruction.
Starting Over
I set up a new stage. I gave myself another chance to resurrect my life. I started a
fashion accessory and fine jewellery business with two retail and wholesale stores. I bought a
I invited my cousin, Vinod, from Dubai to live with us in Canada and take care of my
girls whenever I was away. For the next five years, I travelled while I sought the bright star, the
young child lost within me who was magical and creative. While on buying trips to India and
Southeast Asia, I made a point to seek out holy persons, yogis, astrologers, and even psychics
and channellers. I had a strong intuition that something major was about to happen and soon my
world would change. And that I would be cut loose from everything I took to be real.
The business I had so eagerly started was starting to dwindle as I became more and more
possessed by what was about to come rather than what I had at hand. Eighteen months later, the
business and I were both struggling and whatever money I had was coming to an end.
I was shocked when my accountant informed me that he could try to make a deal with the
bank and the tax department and save me some embarrassment. Not quite ready to accept defeat,
I fought for another six months. With one eye on the business, the other kept searching for the
Madras Baba
Later that year I was attending a leather garment exhibition in Madras, India. There I met
Meena, a young vibrant business woman from Madras. We bonded immediately and got
chatting.
“Meena,” I queried on a note of desperation, “Do you know any enlightened sage or even
“Indeed, there is one old sage who lives not far,” she replied. “He is hard to get hold of
and I hear he does not travel to see anyone. I will send a message and see what I can do.”
The next morning the front desk called me. “Madam, there is an older gentleman here
asking for you.” “Please send him up,” I answered quickly, silently thanking Meena for sending
help.
Moments later there was a knock on my door. I opened it to find an old man who
appeared to be in his early nineties. Except for his eyes, he could have walked out of his grave.
I looked into them and it was like I had jumped into a deep ocean. He was more bones than flesh
and reminded me of Om Baba. This certainly was the sage Meena had spoken of. I welcomed
“Child,” he began, “you live far away from India in a big house on a hilltop; you have
two girls who are being looked after by your brother. He is right now cooking dinner for them.”
I was shocked at his accuracy. My cousin, Vinod, was responsible for the girls and their
food while I was away. The yogi was right; it was dinner time in Calgary, and Vinod surely
“You have started a business, now you will trade tea, but you will give it all up when you
meet God.”
“What do you mean?” I asked. “I am not searching for God. I just want to know if I will
get married again. Will my girls be okay? Will I have enough money to look after my family?”
Baba smiled and spoke softly, “You have a rare ability to see God; I mean in all people
and things. Child, with a gift like this, why do you want to do any other business? Connect
people to God and make them see what you see, and that will be your business.”
“But Baba,” I argued, “I have been in so much pain. I have lost so many things. I don’t
want God. I just want a decent life I can manage. Never mind, Baba, just tell me what will be of
“You have suffered, you are burdened with shame and guilt, you are sick, and you have
lost your savings. Now all of this will come back when you meet God. Child, open the door and
let God in,” Baba insisted. “When you meet Him, your true business will start. You will make
more than what you want and your health will be restored. By the way, you have a lot of loans
“Return home, Child,” he instructed. “Look after your girls. God will find you and all
your loans will be paid. Also, Girl, you should know you have a very pure Soul and anyone who
fights you is fighting God. The man who is in litigation with you is soon to become bankrupt.
He handed me a rosary and assured, “It will help you sleep well. And by the way, are
you reciting your Gayatri Mantra? The Divine Mother tells me you are not.”
There was nothing more to ask or say. Baba had said it all. Even though I did not
understand how a loan or a case could disappear, I believed I was on my way to recovery.
“One last thing Baba,” I asked as he rose to leave. “Can I reach you if I need you?” I
“Yes, and if it’s not me, someone will appear for you,” he said, giving me a number. His
Fingering the rosary he had given me, I felt a strong bond with it. Then I remembered
that just a month ago in Calgary I had lost my wallet that for so many years had carried Om
Upon reaching Delhi, I met with a friend of my brother-in-law. This man owned a prime
tea estate near Calcutta and Assam, and said to me, “Why don’t you try selling some of our high
quality tea? I can send you a shipment of fancy packages we are promoting for Christmas, and
I was not surprised. Madras Baba had proven to be extraordinary, and I tried to reach him
that week at the phone number he had provided, but no one knew where he was anymore. So I
“Do you know how I can reach your Baba?” I asked her.
“No, Ruby,” she sighed. “I do apologize, I wasn’t able to reach Baba. I didn’t call as I
“What?” I exclaimed. “ But Meena, I met with Baba in my hotel room before I left for
Delhi!”
“Ruby, I didn’t send anyone” she argued back. “I was not able to reach him.”
A thrilling chill went through my entire being. I had stepped into my world of magic.
Now I knew I was being looked after. Nothing else mattered then except Madras Baba’s words,
With hope renewed, I returned home to Calgary with Madras Baba’s rosary under my
pillow.
Chapter Three
The Awakening: A Dream Come True
“God! Find me, I don’t know where you are but you know where I am”
“Go home, God will find you!” It sounded strange, but possible. Those words began to
source a familiar energy. God could happen to me. Why hadn’t I thought of it earlier? What
could one want more than God, having God meant having everything, then I could give up my
search forever. The thought was tempting, and began drawing me inwards. And yet in the
background, I could hear a faint but cynical noise, “Do you really believe this is true?”
Within days the new idea found roots and began to sprout within me. Even so, I could
not fathom what meeting God would be like. And where would God find me, I wondered?
Should I stick around the house, or what? Feeling a bout of stress coming on, I took a deep
breath and reminded myself, “Ruby, don’t be stupid. God knows everything.” I stopped, but not
without a prayer.
“Dear God, I wish I knew where to find you, but you know where I am. Can you find me
now?”
Suddenly, images began flashing in my mind. There was the picture on the wall calendar
of fire pouring from Lord Shiva’s third eye; age three chanting Om; Om Baba, chanting Om
Namah Shiva in front of the holy fire; my mother’s last words “Om Namah Shiva.” These
startling images kept repeating with full force. They seemed so alive. I realized something
extraordinary was happening, and so I began to chant, “Om Namah Shiva,” this time for
protection.
The mantra took over and I was soon reciting it silently at work, and even while busy
with others. Then I realized it was not actually me chanting, but the mantra was being chanted
through me. I was simply the channel. It felt weird, but I did not want to interfere with it.
One day my friend, Nas, called and invited me to a meditation class to be held at a
temple. Krishna, the public prosecutor, was taking the class. Prior to this, I had observed
Krishna in the courthouse arguing cases, he reminded me of a bull dog ready to attack. Now,
here he was again taking the class, this time attacking ignorance and forcefully impregnating us
with knowledge.
“Close your eyes and do not look at each other,” he instructed. “Remember you are here
for yourself. Let out the sound. Chant Om to be one with the universe, Namah to surrender, and
So, this is exactly what I did. The chanting stayed with me all night, and I continued the
practice over the next days and weeks. It was during the third week of meditation when things
started to happen. I began to hear music – not outwardly but inwardly. I would smell fragrant
scents and feel the distinct presence of someone. One day while driving to work, I noticed the
trees lining the road were full of green leaves and in each leaf I saw the smiling face of Baby
Krishna (Lord Krishna). Realizing there was a force orchestrating this vision just for me, I
acknowledged the gift with joyful tears. In the distant skies, I would watch the dance of light and
sound, like two translucent bodies of light fondling, teasing and romancing. I could sense that
home was not just this space, my body and mind, and that I was the sensory resonance of many
galatic worlds.
I was still running two retail stores and a wholesale one, but I was starting to lose interest
in business. I had a distinct feeling that soon I would be giving it all up. Meantime, the faint
noise within continued gnawing at me, and now I could hear the voice clearly: “You are crazy.
You are losing your mind and your business. You have children and loans. Wake up and be
responsible.” The voice was threatening and warning. It caused me fear and anxiety, and would
not go away even when I tried to talk it down and ignore it. I began avoiding my friends and
“Ruby, get real, you owe a lot of money to the bank,” warned my cousin, Vinod. “If you
don’t make your monthly payments, you could lose your house and everything else.” Vinod was
still living with us and was such a great help with both the business and my girls. He was a very
quiet man, and usually it was like pulling teeth trying to get an opinion from him. So I knew I
was headed towards disaster, but I was possessed with another feeling that everything would be
all right.
“I know, I know, but I also know something is going to happen. Maybe I will lose
everything and maybe this is suicide, but my inner voice says everything is about to change.”
This would bring on the tears and old pain. “Vinod, you know I have been like the living dead
for so long. What’s the point in dying everyday? If God can’t save me now I might as well call
it quits. I refuse to suffer anymore. I have told God to come and I am going to wait until he
does.”
As much as I was determined, my fear was building. The idea of being with God was
making me nervous. I would lock the doors to the wholesale and retail stores in downtown
Calgary and sit on the sofa cross-legged trying to meditate. Then an inner voice would speak up,
“Don’t kid yourself, Ruby. Sitting doing nothing is lethargy, not meditating.”
I would feel uneasy and scared, but then I remembered Buddha was sitting doing nothing
under the Bodhi tree when he was struck with enlightenment. If it could happen to him, it could
certainly happen to me too. When God descends, all becomes possible. While sitting or
meditating, whichever it was, I felt I was extending or bridging. “Under construction,” I was like
the path that had been torn, virtually ripped apart, but certain there was a new crossover in a
higher design on the way. Certain there was a designer higher than my will, I was counting on
something bigger than myself to land on the other side, “the God side”, I called it. With this
secret close. I perceived God in both a personal and non-personal way; however, I could only
communicate in my own personal human way. He or She, the gender was not relevant; it was
my personal choice, but truth is that God exists and as long as I was connected and
“Sink into your Soul and it will lift you to the top.”
It was now May of 1992, and everywhere gardens were filled with bright coloured tulips.
Summer was just around the corner. I followed my intuition and decided to decorate my kitchen
in white and purple flowers. Soon I was following my intuition to eat, drink, and even choose
the clothes I wanted to wear. The more I listened to my inner voice, the stronger it became.
I was starting to experience a new relationship birthing in me, this time my lover was
God. This union with the divine seemed to be for centuries, and even though separated for a
time we were destined to unite. Through God, I became related to the entire universe, and this
unique union made me honour, preserve and cherish everything in respect and love.
This perspective and relatedness softened me and I felt kindness for the first time in
several years. The new kingdom I would inherit with my union with God would give me
everything I had ever desired. I realized my new role would be to nurture, support, and be
responsible. The new romance was awakening a youthfulness within, yet maturing me. I
decided to live by the inner code. I shed tears easily; I cried when I remembered the pain of
“Hey Ruby, do you want to attend ‘The Silva Mind Control’ workshop? I hear it helps
you to be psychic, I guess, intuitive.” This time it was my friend Cory calling. “You will learn
how to heal yourself and others, and even find lost things,” she chuckled.
“How much?” I asked, intrigued. “If it’s under five hundred, I’m in.” This was the most
At 7:45 the next morning I was registering for the workshop. Twenty-two eager students,
over two and a half days, and on the last day we would work on each other and our instructor,
Mr. Sullivan. He was in his late fifties, bald and reserved. He introduced us to the Alpha, Beta,
and Theta states and then took us through meditations to connect us to the state where we could
access our inner intelligence. “Everyone is a healer and a psychic,” he said. “All the answers you
need are within.” I thought he knew more than he was willing to share.
I sat in the front row, determined that, unlike before, I would prove to be the best student
in the class. This was my opportunity to make up for lost time. I listened to every word and the
meanings in between. On the third day, it was time to practice. We began by entering each
other’s houses and then the physical forms, and here we would describe our findings. Finally,
our teacher tested us by giving us a name, birth-date, and address of a female. We each had to
go within, and then report our findings. I was fourth in line and after what happened that day, I
"Mr. Sullivan,” I said upon my turn, while staring at the blank blackboard up front. “This
woman has undergone some tests or a scan. I see the doctor, he is telling her there is no cause
for alarm, the results are normal. But I know it’s not. She has cancer; they just don’t see it yet.
Now I see her sitting in a country style living room. She is knitting and she is in peace but the
Mr. Sullivan seemed shocked at what I was saying. “Are you sure,” he asked? “Describe
her body. What she is wearing? Tell me more about the room she is in. Ruby, tell me she will
be okay. Can you please give her healing? Will she be healed?” He was frantic and nervous.
“Yes, the dark cloud over her will heal her.” I spoke from another space. I offered more
details and then suddenly I stopped. “I am sorry, Mr. Sullivan, I cannot say more. But the man
next to her will also come into peace.” My eyes then filled with tears and I was not alone. Mr.
Sullivan was openly weeping. What he had not told us was the woman was his wife. Six
Before we left, he said to everyone, “Please do not expect to see what Ruby sees. Her
gift is more than her age. She has connected to knowledge from past lives and it is possible that
during deep meditation she made the connection. What you saw is not Silva Mind Control
Method.”
And just like that, another chapter opened for me. I started to play with the gift. I could
move back and forth in time, see past, present, and future events. I could see into a tree, a plant,
a flower, a dog or cat, and people - dead or alive. I became possessed by the gift and began
Rachna and Sona and Vinod were the first few I revealed it to. The girls would sit on my
bed in the evenings after dinner and give me names of their friends. I would then check in and
share my findings. I had no idea this sharing would be the first step towards healing. Rachna
was now a young woman. My girls were able to sit with me, look at me, and be comfortable.
We laughed and shared our feelings. My new status as “the healing mom” gave me the courage
to face the demons and reach out to my daughters, whose innocence had been victimized by my
actions. I remembered their sad, fearful faces, the big teardrops rolling down their cheeks, afraid
to question me, to ask me what was next. When the marriage broke up, they had fallen instantly
from abundance into lack. I remembered Madras Baba’s words, that it would all come back.
However my thoughts went out to other children who are helpless victims of their parents’
decisions. I was so grateful that my sudden connection was healing us and working wonders.
Now, rather than slipping into withdrawal, I was full of anticipation each day as I waited
for my daughters to return from school so we would resume our investigative and healing
sessions. I knew this was not all, there was more and I was waiting. Then, within weeks of this
episode, Vinod left us to return to India. I continued chanting, and now I made a list of all my
desires. The first list was too vague so I discarded it and became more specific. But truthfully, I
wanted, needed, and desired only one thing, and that one thing was God.
“I felt a luminous God-force, full of compassion and love pouring through me like a great
rushing river.”
It was now the first week of October. In the middle of the night I awoke suddenly,
jumped out of bed, and sat on the meditation carpet in my bedroom. I began to chant loudly, and
soon electric currents were flowing through my body. I began shaking and vibrating so
profusely I was unable to stop. Tears poured down my face as I found myself looking into an
eye that was pouring fire. My own third eye began tingling and burning as the light penetrated it.
I heard myself weeping like an abandoned child whose parents have finally returned home. The
force descending into me was taking over and touching parts of me I did not know existed. A
lifetime of anger and hurt were being replaced with the most exquisite love and joy.
Soon I gave up control and slipped into simply observing. I heard myself say, “Why did
you take so long? Why did you abandon me, why did you make me suffer? I needed you. I
almost gave up my life.” The sobbing continued and so did the shaking. After a while, I
There was no emotion, only motions as the electric currents continued to shock my entire
system. I lay in bed awake and trembling, but eventually lost awareness and probably fell into a
deep sleep. I was awakened by an old man, maybe in his late eighties. He touched me on the
forehead, rubbing my third eye and then sat at the foot of my bed. It was now about 4:30 a.m. I
was still in deep presence, a state I am unable to fully describe, except to say I felt a luminous
God-force, full of compassion and love pouring through me like a great rushing river. My tears
were still flowing, but I made no attempt to wipe them away. I felt like a mother who delivers a
beautiful baby after a long drawn out pregnancy and hard labour.
“Don’t be afraid,” I heard the old man say, telepathically. “You will get to know me and
“Healing,” he answered.
“They will be shown,” he said. “You will have visitations from many masters,” he
continued. “Each will awaken and support you in your healing work. You may not recognize
some of them, but be assured everyone who comes is here to heal you, as you will heal others.”
There were no thoughts exchanged after that. The Master sat in silence and I lay there
absorbing his presence for hours, with waves of currents passing through me. When I finally got
up to walk, I had lost my balance and could not feel the ground under my feet. I fell to the floor
and remained there in a trance for hours, at least until my daughters returned from school.
The girls and a friend took charge. I stayed home for over ten days, getting up only to
use the facilities. I lived off soup and toast which they brought to me in my bedroom. I was
mostly in an altered state. I had no appetite, nor the urge to communicate externally; there was
enough going on internally. I lay on my back, eyes wide open, staring at the ceiling. Visions of
several saints and Masters at work in different parts of the world at different times would pull me
into that time and space. I would become one with them. Soon I would be mumbling messages
or realizations out loud. My body temperature would change, my pulse bounced around, but I
would not move. I felt I was receiving knowledge and information at high speed by actual
experience. It was only after each experience that I would notice the perceptual change. I was
transforming rapidly. It is impossible to recall all the experiences because at that time my mind
was not fully engaged. I was simply experiencing, and for that reason, I later found it hard to
recapture the events. Any attempt was at best a guess or my take on what happened; no wonder
at different times I would describe the same event in different ways. With only my memory to
“Ruby, here, my father sent a photo of Shirdi Sai Baba, a saint and healer,” said my
friend Bina when she came for a visit. “He said Baba told him in meditation this morning to give
you the photo,” she continued, showing it to me. “Here, let’s place the photo on your side table;
I recognized the face. It belonged to the old man who had come for my awakening. Sai
Baba is a saint and a healer who passed on in 1978. With hundreds of temples dedicated to him,
Along with many other paranormal experiences, my body would often go from extreme
heat to cold and vice versa within a short period. On one of these occasions, while I was burning
with heat, raising my pressure up, and finding it hard to breathe, I had a visitation from Jesus
Christ. I looked up to find him standing right at the foot of the bed. Again, the message was
similar. “I am here to help you. Keep your focus on me and be in my presence. Remain with
me and soon the fever will come down and you will regain your strength.”
He said I would have to endure the physical discomfort, but soon I would understand. I
realized my physical body needed to shift for a deeper transformation to occur. He said he
would be with me, and I would remain in his frequency for forty days, by the end of which I
would manifest the energy needed for healing. He told me to borrow my friend Sandy’s Bible
and place it on the side table. He even told me where she would find it. Sandy confirmed the
That night in my vision, I entered an old building that seemed like an ancient temple of
sorts. It had a central hall and was pitch dark except for the light of a single candle burning on
an altar, upon which lay an old scripted text. I knelt down in front of it, surrendering to the
sacred knowledge. At that moment, I heard lightning and the beating of rain and wailing of high
winds flipping the pages of the text. I could see the text outside yet the pages were flipping
inside me. I don’t know exactly how long I was there, but soon enough I was back lying in my
bed experiencing the storm within me. I moved from side to side on the bed trying to sustain the
lightning, rain, and stormy winds within me. The flipping pages were awakening memory of
events I had experienced before/ It seemed like the temple, the text, and everything that was
happening had happened before. This experience rekindled an old flame along with surfaced
knowledge and wisdom of the ancients. I remembered Christ’s words when he asked me to keep
the Bible next to me. “You have everything you need within you,” he said. “Being in the
company of the sacred will help re-awaken your own inner sacred text.”
“The miracle had happened, although it would take time a long time to comprehend it.”
On the morning of October 5,1992, one flash of light had birthed a new Ruby. The old
one was simply extinguished and disappeared, as the new one arose and took her place. The
miracle had happened, even though it would take a long time to fully comprehend it. Even in the
weakened and somewhat confused state I was in, I felt a familiarity with what was happening.
Baba, Christ, and others who were helping me were there to support a mutual purpose. I was one
of them, and I guessed it was probably my turn to awaken, and then help others awaken. The
bond I was experiencing was deeper than what one would feel for relatives and friends. It was “a
oneness” that arises from being one with, or being part of, or being the same as. Different faces
and different times but similar resonance with love and purpose; and maybe that’s how I could
easily access their beings and be their presence. This presence was vibrating within me too, but I
had not consciously connected with it earlier. Either way, I was thrilled and uplifted.
The new Ruby had awakened with another gift, the ability to see and recognize. At first,
it felt like being psychic or intuitive, but soon I realized I had the ability to see into the Soul and
experience everything they had. I had knowledge of their origin, history, and chemistry. I could
read their blueprint and see their Soul design; thus I knew their past, present, and future. I knew
more about them than they were conscious of themselves. What was intuitive before was now a
knowing, and the gift I would later enjoy most was the wisdom and intelligence to alter an
outcome. To me it was the spiritual science of being. It went beyond physical and mental. One
stroke can wipe off what is no longer needed and bring on what is required, and that to me was
magic. A spontaneous transformation that occurs naturally without effort, that shifts who you
are and what you represent, that relieves you of the burdens, enriches you with awareness,
purpose, compatibility and harmony can only be an act of God. I was naive then and did not have
full recognition. But I think I did meet God on that blessed day.
The experiences continued as I had visitations from different saints, masters, and
enlightened beings. Each one embraced me into their presence, showered me with gifts and
blessings, and left me with special abilities to create richness in others and in me. Overnight, I
would inherit my very own kingdom where I would set rules and principles that suited me and
were for me. I finally had a home for my inner world; it was no longer a space or an ideology
out there; it was physical, tangible and real, it was my very own body.
However, it was all new and I was experiencing new vibrations and a new frequency. I
was learning to facilitate and communicate, this time multi-dimensionally. Every word would
reflect knowledge and awareness of different dimensions. I had become part of a mission with
several other movers and shakers; and now it was time to go to work. Once there, I would get
more proof of what was happening. But I felt unstable, I was very weak, and my nerves were
terrible, and before I could return to work I knew I needed some kind of help.
One day as I was sharing some of my travels and meetings with masters with my friend,
Julie, she became concerned. “Ruby,” she said, “you must protect yourself. There are
dimensions you should not enter without protection.” I knew she was right as I was starting to
experience negative and disincarnate entities, and although they were looking for healing they
were troublesome and draining. I was aware I could become trapped. The visitations from souls
who had departed from the physical world with unfinished business or who had left behind pain,
trauma, unanswered questions and confusion were especially draining. My time and space was
filled with entities giving messages and information for their loved ones. I was tired but could
not stop the channel. I was afraid that I was caught in an unfamiliar dimension, I needed help
“You must see Dr. Noel,” she said, giving me his card.
Help Arrives
I met Dr. Noel at his holistic centre in Calgary. He was a homeopath and metaphysician
and I was impressed by his knowledge and skills in the healing arts. His interest and
experiments began as a child and now as a master, he taught and helped others with his unique
gift.
He showed me around his holistic center and introduced me to few of his colleagues,
acupuncturists, naturopaths, Reiki Masters, massage therapists, and different energy healers. He
listened to my story and understood everything I was experiencing. Nothing was beyond him.
He was not surprised when I told him about visitations from masters. “Ruby, if you feel you met
Jesus Christ then that’s who you met. Follow the message and go back to work and see what
happens.”
“Do you think I am going crazy? If I actually lose my mind I’m going to kill myself.
He would just shrug his shoulders and say, “If you believe it is real, then it is. But if you
don’t live out your belief, then you will be crazy for sure. I will help you become strong to do
your work healthily but I do want to warn you that this is not easy, many a healers have lost their
grounding working as channels. You need control over what comes through your channel, you
“Trust me Ruby, the spirit world is more than one can fathom. Look at yourself, you look
possessed, you are loosing control of your mind and sleep. You need rest.” He took instant
control. That evening he brought over herbs and homeopathic remedies and soon requested his
healer friends to give me treatments in my house. I still suffered from anxiety, shakiness, and
loss of energy. I could not get up from the bed, cook or take care of the girls. My friends and
Noel made arrangements for food and other necessities. They brought different spiritual and
metaphysical literature and read to me till late hours so I could understand and be comfortable
with my condition. They gave me special prayers that would strengthen and protect me.
Noel’s presence and direct experiences with forces still unknown to me lessened my fear
of the dark and unknown forces. He helped me when I felt stuck and trapped in other
dimensions. He showed me how to enter and exit with least bit of resistance. This was all new to
me, “There are ways to get what you want,” he said one day. “You can pray, ask, request,
command, or demand. It all depends on how strong you are, and of course, who you encounter.
I felt I had friends on both the subtle and the physical planes providing me protection,
guidance, better health and spiritual well-being. I called Noel my bodyguard. When I offered to
pay him for his time, he simply said, “Get better first, and we will talk about this once you are
healthy.”
On my third day back at the retail store, a woman in her thirties approached me and
Before I could respond to her question, I just blurted out, “How can you walk around
“I can feel it. Also, you are allergic to some seafood you had, probably last night.” As I
“No, but I can help you.” I quickly brought her a glass of water, and said simply, “Here,
drink this and you will be fine.” Before handing her the glass, I visualized the water turning into
white light. I glanced quickly at Jesus, who at that moment stood beside me.
“And please don’t resign from your job. In a fortnight you will get the position you
want.” There was no reluctance; the message coming from me had purpose. She was stunned,
This mini session had tired me, and I could feel currents rising and falling within.
Heading into the back office, I collapsed onto the sofa. I looked at Jesus and blurted, “What the
I shared the story with my girls that evening, and every evening after that. They loved
being part of my invisible world. It was magic to them and to me. Their faith would ground me.
A few days after the healing episode, my manager answered a call to the store.
“I would like to make an appointment to see the healer,” the woman said.
“Who? I think you have the wrong number,” my manager replied, ready to hang up.
Quickly the woman explained, “I was at your store few days ago when this Asian woman healed
my headache. I want to book a session with her. How much does she charge?”
Putting her hand over the receiver, my manager repeated the message to me.
“Forty-five.” Noel, sitting beside me, threw out the amount spontaneously.
This was the beginning of the spiritual work that would become my life’s practice. Each
client felt thrilled, exhilarated, and comforted, and each referred at least five others. Soon there
were more spiritual clients coming to the store than customers! After a few sessions, I began
locking the front door so as not to be disturbed. Without realizing it, I would slowly shut the
door to the clothing and jewellery business, and open the door to the inner calling. Money was
not the consideration. I had put thousands into the business, but earning forty-five dollars doing
this work was more fulfilling than the return on the business. It sounded crazy, but I still
believed God would pay off the bank line of credit, and save me from the creditors.
The sessions were exciting. I never knew what to expect and shared everything as it
came from within. I would feel the presence of Masters who were guiding me to guide my
clients. Each session increased my awareness, and soon I mastered the art of communicating
using the specific, words, emotion and tone that would ignite some light in my clients. They
were touched and so was I. I felt what they felt. I felt intense compassion and love for my
clients. Not for a moment did I feel I was healing anyone; I just shared myself fully with them,
and out of the fullness came words, energies, and healing. I believed that one cell in everyone’s
heart was me. I realized that no person can heal, healing is truly beyond us; one can simply be
present and connected and hold the desire to help. Working with my clients, I was able to
experience their journey, retrieve their gifts, connect with their masters and guides, and through
them I connected to my own parts and pieces that were forgotten and lay buried in the psyche,
waiting to be revived and awakened. I was starting to believe that what I was searching for was
always within me. The opportunity to travel in time and experience the past, this time
“Soon you will access the ‘all intelligence’ and energy you need to do this work. Your
body may be weak, but you have the strength to live out the spiritual dream. It is of God, and
I now believed the messages from the visiting masters and healers. I certainly had
awakened to another life and another dream. Yes, it was the same body and the same
environment, but the mind was new with a higher level of intelligence, a new level of awareness,
and a very expansive perspective. The process was physically and mentally cumbersome and it
unfolded despite my fears, apprehension, and even lack of trust. My awakening was sudden. I
was like Cinderella, stepping into a ballroom of spiritual glamour and magic. Except this was no
fairy tale; it was real, true, and practical. And the party didn’t end at midnight; it continued
Even though I didn’t know exactly what I was doing, I began working as a spiritual
advisor almost immediately. I set up a table and a couple of chairs in the back office of my retail
outlet, and the clients began trickling in. At first, I felt like a puppet being used by other spiritual
entities to deliver their intelligence. My physical body was an instrument through which the
purpose of a greater Soul flowed without interruption. I became the voice for disembodied
teachers, healers, and masters who now worked through my being. It may have looked like I was
alone, but I was in the company of many. Strangely, I could participate and observe at the same
time.
Within weeks, I expanded my office into my retail showroom. Most of my clients sought
pleasure or escape from pain. Only a few wanted true spiritual insight into the Soul. These few
wanted to know who they were at a deeper level, and what they were born to do.
My work was simple yet complicated and I fell into it rapidly, without hesitation. In a
few more weeks, I gave up my retail business altogether. Before I knew it, I had become part of
a healing project, which later turned into a way of living and a way of being. I knew I was being
Soon I began having visions – images, energy patterns relating to events and experiences
beyond our known space and time. All manifestation is physical and has history and chemistry,
and the visions gave me the inside story. I developed a way to decode the images and energy
patterns by feeling them with my physical senses, body and mind and retrieved the story that felt
most truthful to me. And I was accurate every time; my clients confirmed my findings. I had
become a Soul detective with insight into any mind and body and could resolve matters
Soon I was accessing Soul prints as well as their Soul purpose. After retrieving
information I would create visions for my clients to influence their chemistry, psychology and
physiology. Each vision had a personal story that served as spiritual medicine to complete, fulfill
This is when I took to writing. I would sit with paper and pen, and soon I could feel the
push or a force from within start to express itself on paper. I would follow the flow and soon
become conscious of what was being written. I would stop writing when the force began to
diminish. It was magical to experience the knowledge as I wrote. The content usually would
give me history of events and behind the scene knowledge. My soul was becoming more and
more visible through these writings. In a matter of months, I had wisdom and knowledge of
many lifetimes.
The life I was now living was one I could never have imagined. Using my intention, I
was able to locate other Soul beings, entities, and guides in both the physical and the non-
physical realms and communicate with them. My intuition expanded by leaps and bounds.
Two years into my work as a spiritual consultant, I met Joan Churcher, a practicing
psychologist. Her interest in my work was triggered by a client of hers who decided to follow
my advice and suspend her therapy with Joan to heal her broken heart and marriage. It did not
take long for Joan to show up at my office for a session herself. I had instant recognition; I had
known her for many lifetimes. We were now back to complete the work we once started. I could
feel the stress of her ambitious soul trying to balance between darkness and light. The effort it
takes to hold that space makes the strongest vulnerable and fragile. Joan’s integrity outweighed
the struggles; she was ready to unburden herself. Joan made a conscious decision to put her
clients first, she referred almost all her clients to me and in turn I invited her to be present for
their past life sessions. We worked with over hundred clients to resolve issues relating to health,
relationships, and life purpose. Through their stories we had the opportunity to work on our
residual business. In Joan, I found a friend, a partner with whom I could share my inner world.
This is also when Joan inspired me to raise my fees from forty five dollars to seventy five.
“Joan,” I would call, “how about a session and some lunch at the Egyptian’s
Restaurant?” We would meet at least once a week at a small café whose owner Steve, cooked
something special each time we were there. Back in the office we would finish off by taking a
soul guided tour to visit friends and support others in need on other planes. I would start the
“We pray to God, the holiest of the holy, to the sages and saints and masters who guide
us and protect us. Let there be light so we may see what we need to, give us knowledge and
wisdom to heal and awareness to fulfill our purpose.” With this, we would close our eyes and
Joan’s practice soon dwindled as clients found wings and the strength to fly. We were left
with touching stories and profound memories. “Joan, you must write about these experiences”, I
requested her in one of the sessions and so she did. She wrote about the healings and her
experiences Beyond Me: Secrets of a Practical Mystic, a book with over eighty case histories of
clients.
During this same time period, I met an interesting client, who later would become a
friend and also my doctor, Dr. Bruce Hoffman. I still remember our first meeting. He was pure,
beautiful and joyous. The image he invoked in me was of a young lad playing by the ocean side.
Holding onto the long string with many colorful balloons, he looks into the blue skies, smiles and
willfully releases the string allowing the balloons to fly everywhere. And then suddenly feels lost
and angry because now he has nothing to play with. His soul was very familiar, I knew him from
somewhere and knew that this was a case of deliberate naughtiness, souls like him manifest to
play a dual game. Externally they suffer the anguish of lost toys, thus unable to fully experience
their play, but inwardly they cherish the game of ‘lost-less-ness’. This hide and seek is a popular
game amongst creative soul artists. My challenge with Bruce was to keep a straight face and not
smile as he unfolded his story. He was probably the only client who was intense enough to hold
onto the mask for so long. I loved his brilliance and his play. He was a medical doctor with many
interests and he desired to explore them all. He had studied Ayurveda with Dr. Deepak Chopra
and it did not take him long to sprinkle spirituality in his mix of healing. I didn’t quite
understand why he chose to see me so often; maybe this was his way holding on and embracing
his truth. All I could for him was to show him the mirror and that I did repeatedly. However, in
the process he mentioned my work to several of his clients who he chose to visit me. I had the
opportunity to utilize my gift with various medical conditions. I knew the modus operandi of the
Soul; it will create disorder and stress when it loses the conscious connection with the mind and
body organism. Sometimes a mere promise to honor the soul was enough to ignite the flame
within; other times I would have to investigate and revisit the experiences where the breakdown
occurred. Good health requires a person to be centered in their vital core, the Soul has to be the
master, the mind has to clear and doubt free and the body has to be alert, aware and awake. I
soon developed a three-step formula that would serve my gift of healing most.
During the first “getting to know” session, I would scan my client physically and
psychologically, their past, present, and future potential and purpose. I would listen as they
revealed their current problem and then advise them of my findings. Together, we would then
develop a plan to fulfill their dream lifestyle and their Soul Promise. During the second session
we would begin the “work”. I would awaken the presence of the masters and healers and then
work on their fears, weaknesses, and phobias and breakdowns. This is when I would remove
influences of either entities or any residual burdens and stresses. Once they were lighter, I would
facilitate their Soul connection. This session was usually the heaviest and the longest. The third
session was to develop their genius and awaken their one of a kind gifts. This sometimes meant
going into their past to retrieve blessings, knowledge and skill. I would give them the visions to
heal and align their mind and body to their Soul purpose.
As I worked with hundreds of clients, I realized that in their release was my release, their
health influenced my health, and their Soul purpose strengthened mine. Truly this was of God,
for every time I met with someone I met with God, and every time I awakened someone to see
their own divinity, they showed me a bit of mine. I now understood what Madras Baba meant. I
It seemed like my Source was a bottomless pit; the more I tapped into it and expressed it,
the more intelligence I was able to retrieve from it. I felt I was part of everyone’s life, and I was
in everything and everywhere. Each cell within me had the imprint of a child, born and unborn.
My work was unique, and as I touched so many hearts and Souls; I knew I was making a
difference. As I delivered vision after vision, many of my clients found health, wealth, purpose
and a home for their Soul. At the time I was content, confident I was doing what I was meant to
do.
Doing this work engaged me twelve to fourteen hours a day. I saw hundreds of clients
and in my spare time I wrote and developed new ways of connecting and communicating.
Somewhere along the way, I noticed that my inner Soul friends and invisible partners took a
back seat, and I became the major driving force in my work. It’s felt like they melted into
nothingness after I had absorbed the gifts of their wisdom into my being; I was now strong and
able to work with large groups. I was starting to live the life I had been seeking. Once again I
increased my fees, this time to keep in line with Bruce Hoffman’s fees. It was interesting to
appearance. So it was with the special friends who came to visit and support me. Their support
backed up my insights with the vibrational force needed for healing. Words need energy, force
and truth to manifest. I could feel subtle changes in my psychology and physiology. I could
enter dimensions previously unknown to me. Their love softened my body, my skin oozed with
beautiful fragrant scents. Each one shared few words of wisdom that went straight into my blood
stream and from there to the entire body. My insights became organic and physical. Every cell
embodied truth with flowing awareness. I was not thinking of truth but now living it.
Christ, Buddha, Ramana Maharishi, Rumi, Kabir, Albert Einstein, Guru Nanak, J.
scientists, sages, saints, poets and artists, continued to visit gifting me with enlightening
messages.
Jesus Christ: “ Heaven is within; God sits on the throne that bears your name.” I knew
right away what he meant. I started to meditate upon my name to go deeper into my divinity.
Buddha: “ Mastery or mystery; one seeks only what they know. If it is truth you seek;
then drop the thought that has lead you to the Self but has kept you from being the Self.”
Guru Nanak was the revered master whose teachings gave birth to Sikhism over 500 years ago.
He was Bedi, and I was told my family is directly descended from the same lineage. He
“ There is only one, it is God! God is everything. Dust turns into gold when you realize
the God principle.” I could feel in my flesh and bones the truth of this simple and most profound
message in each and every cell and I promised my self that I would not rest till my entire body
Aurobindo was an Indian philosopher and poet who passed away two hours before I was
born. From him I received: “ We each walk our own path; we and can meet only in spirit. Don’t
Ramana Maharishi: “Observe the is-ness and get to the no-thing ness. Therein lies the
gift of truth.” His words deposited me in a deep presence I had not experienced before.
Krishnamurti said: “ Observe the questioner and follow it to the Source. Your inquiry
Rumi, the great poet said: “Love God or dog, both will touch your Soul and make you
cry. Tears are proof that you are alive and are ready for more.”
Osho said: “If you want to play hide and seek, then you hide and let God seek you.”
St. Francis of Assisi said: “It takes many lives to know God, but one to know yourself.”
Parmahansa Yogananda said: “Whatever you need will find you, even God.”
With these simple lines, I was initiated into their truth and given direct experience of
being one with greater purpose. Their paths were different, each had their way to realize and
serve their truth. I felt blessed that these and others messengers had come to be with me. The
doors were open and I was being showered with abundance. Each one put me more in touch
with different aspects in myself. But even more than their words, what touched me most was
their love.
“Work alongside God and you will have everything you want.”
With my health now stable, thanks to Dr Noel, and my new business in place, I was
finally ready to face my financial situation. My one hundred and seventy thousand dollar line of
credit tied to the retail stores had been weighing on me for months. The haunting phone calls
from my personal banker, Dianne, were frightening. She was a tough woman and rarely made
conversation; only demanded sales updates and explanations I could not give. My house was
Following my inner guidance and the words of the masters, “Work alongside God and
you will have everything you want,” I made an appointment with her. Dr. Noel, advised me to
look into her eyes, take her hands in mine, feel her heart, and be truthful. As I sat down with her
“Dianne,” I said, “I can’t pay the thirteen hundred dollar interest on my loan every
month. I don’t even know how I can ever repay this loan.” I was taking a big chance here. One
wrong move and she could call the loan and push me right into bankruptcy. But I needed to be
truthful. I told her I could no longer work at the retail business. God has spoken and given me
something else to do. I had accepted the position that was bestowed upon me, helping people.
“Well, something strange happened to me,” I began. And then, despite my sense that she
was not an airy-fairy person and would believe nothing without tangible, empirical proof, I told
her everything. And when I was done, to my shock she asked, “Can you see entities? Can you
“Well, my father passed away and in the past week he has come to me three times,” she
explained. “I mean in my dreams. I don’t know what the heck he wants and I don’t know too
much about how these things work, but I’d say he wants something,” she concluded.
“Well, maybe he has a message for you,” I offered. “Let me check.” Closing my eyes, I
connected instantly with her father, retrieved his messages, and passed them on to her. Dianne
was simply shocked, she had really needed these messages. I later learned that, in addition to her
father’s recent death, her relationship was crumbling and she was suffering from a broken heart.
Thus softened by life, this tough lady who had terrified me began to weep.
Wiping her tears off, she said, “Ruby, I will defer your payments for six months and let’s
see what happens. Don’t worry about it, just do your work - I mean just help people.” And then
That six-month grace period just naturally extended to two and a half years. At that
point, I was able to sell a piece of property that I unexpectedly inherited and was able to pay off
Madras Baba was right when he had said, “Don’t worry. God will take care of the loan.”
Dianne’s freezing of the loan, not haunting me or even sending me monthly statements, but
rather supporting me by sending more clients was proof that miracles are possible when we rise
to our calling. I smiled as all she asked in turn was, “Ruby can you connect me directly to my
guides?”
Chapter Four
The Masters Put Me To Work
“Hold my hand and together we will walk through the garden of paradise.”
I had a distinct feeling the guides were supporting me for both my benefit and for their
own. By assisting me, they were fulfilling their own promises. This became evident as I
watched the subtle connection between my clients and their guides. For instance, when I had
visitations from Buddha, the majority of the clients who consulted me were Buddhist. These
were not people with strong religious ties, nor did they come seeking favors. Their goal was to
This three way interaction with masters, clients and myself was spontaneous and
simultaneous. The guides were facilitating health and wellness through me, as well as taking
care of old or unfinished business. I sensed the guides felt obliged to help their Soul groups and
elevate them to higher states. I was beginning to get glimpses of a deeper truth; purpose can
supersede the cycle of birth and death, and promises made in one life could take many lives to
fulfill. It was not just one master, but many seemed to be conducting business the same way.
Since the day Shirdi Sai Baba helped awaken me, I have attracted hundreds of his
devotees and helped them find peace and abundance. Almost every one indicated that Sai Baba
had led them to me in some way. These clients were not always Soul searching; they were often
looking for a quick and fast way to eliminate pain and suffering. They had blind faith in their
Guru, and believing me to have the same faith, they believed my devotion to their master would
When in the company of Ramana Maharishi, I noted my work was more with
intellectuals. These people sought freedom from ignorance. They did not buy into blind faith;
Frequently, I found myself in the midst of situations beyond my control. However, they
probably worked out better than I anticipated, and each experience taught me to welcome every
opportunity to open the door to the unknown which would soon become my playground. The
rules of play were simple; live through inspiration and not fear or worry of outcome. This creates
Such was the case when I was in the company of Sathya Sai Baba from Puttaparti, India.
“Ruby, would you like to visit the Sathya Sai’s Satsang this morning?” said my friend,
Doug, when I answered the phone. “ I could pick you up in thirty minutes.”
“Sure!” I gulped down my hot tea and dashed for the shower. Standing before my open
closet, I considered my wardrobe. Purple it would be for that day I felt and twenty minutes later
The prayer had begun when we got there. Not wanting to disturb anyone we sat in the
back row, I with the ladies, and Doug with the men, as is the temple tradition in India. After the
devotional singing and prayers, we were given Prasad. Just when I was about to receive mine, a
woman in her thirties sprang in front of me and bowed down, placing her head on my knee.
“Please, please help me,” she begged. “I have come here for you. I want your blessings.” Her
head was covered with her chuni6 and she was weeping. With no idea what this was about, I
“My name is Prema. I have been praying to Sathya Sai to help me find a job so I can
support the kids. I came from India few months ago and promised my sick sister I would help
take care of her three children. They are all under ten. A month ago, my sister died and I have
6
Chuni: Traditional Indian Head Scarf.
no way of providing for them. Last night Sai appeared to me as I was praying and told me he
was sending help. And that the woman who would help me would be here, wearing a purple
suit.”
“He even showed me a photo of you, in a brown crocheted dress. But your hair was short,
so it took me a while to recognize you. He said I must invite you home and then everything will
be okay.”
I was startled but confirmed, “Yes, the picture in the brown dress was taken last year
when my hair was shorter. It was on the cover of my book- The Divine I,” I finished.
Paying little attention to my words, she continued, “Sai said I must invite you home. Can
I didn’t have the heart to refuse. “Tomorrow,” I promised her. That evening I connected
with Sathya Sai in my meditation, and this was the first time I would communicate with a master
“What was that about?” I asked. “You totally set me up! You really think I can get her a
job?” Sai smiled and said, “Yes, she is right, she will get a job.”
He just smiled, saying, “Do nothing, be present, and watch what happens.”
The next day I arrived at Prema’s house and at she took me first to her prayer room where
we bowed and sat in front of a picture of Sai. When Prema handed me a rosary from Sai’s
ashram, I could sense his presence in the room. I closed my eyes and quickly connected with Sai.
“Now what?” I asked. No answer came, so I knew I was on my own. I went deeper and
“Prema, don’t worry; you have won God over with your pure heart. You will get a job to
support yourself and the children. And the job will find you without you having to leave your
house.”
“But where will I work?” she pleaded. “I don’t speak any English.”
“Prema, remember anything is possible when you have God on your side,” I counseled.
“Stay home with your children and soon the job will find you.”
She would not let me leave without lunch and I was not surprised when she presented my
favourite Indian dishes. She served me and looked after me like she was serving Sai. I thanked
her, and silently Sai, for a delicious meal, and just when I was leaving she said “Ruby-ji,7 please
make sure I get at least eight- fifty per hour. I cannot look after the family for less.” I just
Two and a half weeks later, I came home to find a message from Prema on my answering
machine.
“Thank you Ruby-ji, I have a job!” I met a woman in the laundry room who has a
clothing store at Chinook Shopping Centre. She has hired me to do alterations. She lives in the
same complex so she will bring the alterations to me so I don’t have to leave the children. Oh,
yes! She will pay me nine dollars and twenty-five cents, more than what I asked for.”
“Thank you God, there is always more when you take over,” I said out loud. There were
other occasions this like when I was sure the guides had conspired to create the circumstances
that brought me together with their people. The healings and miracles that occurred were
probably part of some bigger plan. Although spontaneous, they were strategically orchestrated.
The fine precision timing made me conscious of a greater intelligence at work behind the scenes.
Having realized that it did not all depend on me, and there were other factors contributing
to miracles and healings, I felt less stressed and more relaxed. I had to laugh at the orchestration;
7
The suffix –ji is added to a name to indicate respect, often to a spiritual teacher.
these guides were working overtime, and I was getting all the credit, recognition, and
acknowledgement; things I yearned to enjoy. What my parents and family had been unable to
give me was now coming from strangers in the form of flowers, thank-you cards, gifts, and
money. I loved it all, but feared that all good things must come to an end. But I was smart
enough not to miss the precious moment, so I soaked it all in. I would enjoy this attention and
special status as long as it lasted. I couldn’t help looking up and saying, “Hey, big fellow, you
did it again!” This was my way of keeping God interested and in the loop.
Realization Fellowship Centre and temple in San Diego. After lunch, I sat with my cousin
Roma, on a bench overlooking the Bay area and thought how lucky the revered Guru, was to
have this beautiful sanctuary and gardens as his work place. Before I knew it, I was speaking to
him. “Lucky you, I wish I could work out of this space, and do work like you.” Just then I had a
vision of the master giving me a wooden rosary with turquoise beads, with a request to meditate.
As soon as I touched the wooden rosary beads I felt a silver blue light enter me bringing peace
and contentment. I was filled with love. A few moments later I felt the urge to move to the side
gardens.
“This tree is pulling me,” I said to my cousin. “Let’s sit under here.” About ten minutes
later, I noticed a woman who appeared to be in her thirties heading towards us.
“Thank God you have arrived,” she said. “I’m Tammy. I’ve been waiting for three hours
and had almost given up. The last bus leaves in an hour and I have to return to Los Angeles for
my flight home.” She was speaking as if to a friend. Her eyes were red and puffy, clearly she
“I came here to meet you,” she explained. “About ten days ago, I was meditating and I
asked my Guru- Paramahansa Yogananda, for help. He came in my dreams three times with
messages, but I could not understand him. So he told me to come here, this Sunday. He showed
me this garden and this tree. ‘Wait there, I am sending help,’ he said. He told me you are a
healer and you will know what to do. I trusted him, but had no money for the trip. Then my
brother offered to pay. I have been waiting all afternoon and was ready to leave when I saw
you.” By now the tears were rolling down her cheeks, and she made no attempt to stop them.
“My ex-husband, he will hunt me down. I know he will. He beat and abused me for
many years. He went to prison for violence and drugs, but was released just a few weeks ago.
He threatened me, saying no one can save me now.” She was hysterical and blurting out words I
“Hold it, hold it!” I said, and asked her to slow down while I scanned the situation.
“Just relax now, and meditate with me,” I instructed her. I guided her into a quieter space
where she could let down her guard and relax. As I connected her to her guides, I spent ten
“Repeat the vision I give to you for ten days,” I said, “and everything will be okay. And
don’t worry, your husband will not hurt you; rather, he will start to pay you child support and
alimony.” “In just ten days? How will you…?” She started to question but then she suddenly
“Perfect,” I said without thinking. I was in a spot. I had promised the woman retribution
from an estranged husband who had put her in hospital with a broken arm and ribs several times.
“Whatever,” I spoke out loud. Divine intervention can resolve matters in seconds. I had
made a promise that God would have to keep, of that I was sure. The woman asked me for my
address and after giving me a big hug, rushed away. Then she stopped.
“Ruby, I almost forgot,” she said, and dug into her purse for a small jewellery bag. “This
In the bag was wrapped a beautiful wooden rosary with turquoise beads. “Thank you,” I
said, kissing it as I gazed at the descending streams of gold and copper sunlight shining through
My cousin and I drove away mostly in silence but once we began speaking we could not
stop. All the way home we shared stories of miracles and healings of masters. Somewhere
during our conversations I heard Yogananda whisper, “Are you ready for the robe?”
“Not yet,” I replied silently, not yet willing to forsake my freedom and independence for
Within a month, I received a letter from Tammy. Thanking me profusely, she wrote,
“My fifteen year old daughter had a serious accident. I was at the hospital when my ex-husband
showed up with a Bible in his hands. He said the priest in his neighbourhood church gave it to
him. He said one night about a week after our meeting, he had a visitation from Christ. ‘Wake
up,’ Christ said. ‘You are about to lose the last chance. Your promise was to teach love and
help others, not to kill and destroy the people you love. You were given all the experiences you
needed to fulfill your life’s purpose. Honour your responsibilities, and the promise you made to
yourself and God.’ His world changed instantly. He went into a nearby church and wept for
forgiveness and asked to be filled with love. Of course, he rushed to the hospital when he
She ended with, “Ruby, I have decided to be friends with him as he is honouring his word
to me. But I will not go back to him. I have also started a course in coaching. I want to be a life
coach and help others. P.S. I would love to see you sometime. Until then.”
Instances like this kept me fed at the Soul level and filled with Spirit. All these
experiences, including my clients were part of a magical world. The awe and wonder gave me
ample energy to work twelve to fourteen hours a day. In my free time I would write pages upon
pages, filling many notebooks with inspiration. Mostly, I kept to myself and had very little
The visitations from different masters continued. They would send me individuals they
wanted to help. I would act as ‘their master’s voice’ to share the messages and then would find a
solution for their problems. Clients came for their own reasons, but I felt compelled to first
connect them to their source and then work with their wish list. After a while, I noticed there
was a considerable gap between what they wanted and what they actually needed. I realized the
deepest desire each client had was to get to know themselves and live out their full potential, but
The masters were of the same mind. They also wanted to help their clan members
(probably Soul groups) by first bringing awareness. Healing took on a new meaning. It now
meant not just having a disease-free mind and body, but freeing the Soul to express it’s creativity
After about two and a half years of this work, I decided to travel to India to attend my
nephew’s wedding. It was also a great opportunity to visit the places where some of these
masters had lived during their lifetimes. It would be my way to honour them and say thank you.
I began with a trip to Banglore to visit Sathya Sai Baba at his ashram in Puttaparti. From
there I went to J. Krishnamurti’s Theosophical Society in Chennai, then headed straight to the
Arunachala mountain range to pay homage to the late Bhagwan Sri Ramana Maharishi. Next I
went to the Osho Commune in Pune, Sai Baba’s temple at Shirdi and Sri Ramakrishna
Paramahansa’s abode in Calcutta. After visiting Auroville in Pondicherry, the home of Sri
Aurobindo, I headed for the Sikh Gurudwara Golden Temple in Amritsar, Punjab. Of course,
my pilgrimage could not be complete without a visit to Pashupati Nath, the largest Shiva Temple
in Kathmandu, Nepal.
After making plans with some close friends, we set out and reached Katmandu early in
the evening. While they checked in at the hotel, I approached the hotel’s guest relations manager
to find out how to visit the temple. The man was touched when I told him of my promise to
myself to visit the temple and conduct special prayers on my on birthday, December the sixth.
“That’s tomorrow!” he exclaimed. “But it’s too late to make arrangements for the
morning prayers. People book months in advance! And tomorrow is Shivratri. Hordes of people
“Mr. Pillay, I must have the Puja, and the high priest himself must do it for me. You see I
want a pure Soul who can talk to God to conduct the Puja for me. Now before we lose more
time, make it happen. Please.” It was a request – really an order he could not refuse.
A few minutes later he reported, “Bhandari-ji” as he referred to the high priest, “himself
does not conduct the Puja for visitors, unless for some special reason. You have half an hour
before they close the gates to the temple residences. You can try your luck.”
A few minutes later I was seated in an old Fiat with Mr. Pillay at the wheel, driving with
reckless abandon the six miles straight uphill to the temple residences. He drove past the first
gate with the help of a little lie about my status, but at the second the guards were adamant, and
said, “Bhandariji is in the Puja. Moreover, he does not meet with anyone after sundown.”
At this point, I stepped in. “Here, it’s Canadian,” I said, handing him a twenty dollar bill.
“Which way?”
The guard pointed to a complex as he stuffed the bill in his pocket. We ran and joined a
group of saffron-robed priests that were moving to the inner quarters. No one questioned us, and
I couldn’t believe I was actually here, in the inner chambers of the high priest. This was not the
first time I had found myself on foreign land with unknown people, waiting for an unknown
person, for the unknown to happen. Seated on straw mats, we waited for more than an hour
Because I was the only woman in the crowd, he fixed his attention upon me. Then he
I spoke to the high priest directly. “It’s my birthday tomorrow and I want you to do a
special Puja for me.” I was a bit embarrassed to speak in front of all those others, but I was not
The assistant began to respond, “He wants to know your name and your birth date,” just
“Ruby,” I shouted out, along with my birth date. Bhandariji closed his eyes for a few
minutes. I knew he was checking me out, just as I did my clients. He whispered something to
the priest who then said, “Tomorrow is Shivaratri, and Bhandariji will be conducting Puja for the
temple at four-thirty. But he will personally make the offering for you if you arrive at three-thirty
in the morning.
Hooray, I thought. I had come through again. I jumped up and was about to leave the
room when I saw Bhandariji pulling on his right ear and speaking quietly to the assistant priest.
“Don’t be late,” said the assistant priest, breaking into a smile. “And by the way,
Maharajji says you are chewing God’s ear. Speak less, He can read your thoughts, you know?”
There was laughter in the others as Mr. Pillay and I left the room. Before I left we made
Sleep would not come that night. My body was vibrating with such excitement, that by
two-thirty I was ready and waiting in the lobby for a taxi to arrive. When an almost new green
“All the regular taxis were booked Madam,” said the driver, “so the owner sent his own
personal car. It is brand new and will cost two hundred rupees extra though.”
I didn’t give a hoot, and giggling like a teenager I jumped in and wondered- what are the
The next two hours were out of this world. No words can really describe the experience
without minimizing it considerably. All the priests wore long saffron robes with kumkum
(vermillion) on their foreheads, except for the third eye, which was painted in white. They were
chanting loudly, and each carried an oil lantern. In this dim light I could see they also carried
fresh flowers, coconut, sweets, and other offerings in trays. We moved in a procession covering
all four corners, dropping offerings along the pathway, before we arrived at the temple’s inner
sanctum.
Inside, the rituals began once again with chanting, while I waited until I was summoned
to the centre. I stood to the left of the high priest, and he had me touch the offerings before he
In the midst of the Puja, I felt a strong desire, which I verbalized. “Please God, give me
proof that you love me as much as I love you, and that I am special to you.” At the end, the high
priest took a rudraksh mala9 from the Shiv lingam along with other Prasad and handed it to me.
When I re-entered the courtyard, it was filled with hundreds of saffron-robed priests, who
now began chanting. Soon, the chants were echoing through the valley and I felt electricity in the
very atmosphere. I felt sharp pain as if thousands of tiny pins were poking into me. Then, there
was sudden silence and absolute quietness. I felt like I was under a spell. In a daze, I passed
through the main gates of the temple and walked down the hill to the parking lot where the green
Mercedes waited.
Before we left, the young priest handed me the offerings saying, “Please return this
We reached the hotel just before sunrise and my friends were still fast asleep. I went
straight to my room and crashed on the bed, placing the rudraksh mala on my chest. At two-
thirty in the afternoon, I felt I was waking from a deep trance. For almost eight hours I had not
8
Shiva lingam is a symbol for the worship of the Hindu deity Shiva.
9
Rudraksh Mala: Rosary Beads used in meditation.
shifted or moved in my sleep; the rudraksh mala still lay where I had placed it.
As I had been instructed, I returned to the temple in time for the evening Puja. It was like
stepping into yet another world. The courtyards were filled with huge throngs of priests,
devotees, and monkeys. I stood behind hundreds of people gathered near the temple area. The
prayers lasted thirty minutes, and as the people dashed in to get blessings, the head priest threw
three large garlands of jasmine and marigold from the Shiv lingam into the crowd. People went
wild trying to jump up and grab the garlands. Suddenly, as I watched, one garland came flying
over at least two hundred feet and landed on me. Many hands had tried to grab it along its way,
but it found me. I was shocked, but hadn’t I asked for proof? And what better than God adorning
me with this special garland. This was a day I will never forget. Not long after that my visit to
Once home, I was inspired and eager to share myself. This time I was ready to take on
more, knowing God was really on my side. It was now my turn to inspire others so they too
could feel the love and trust as I did. It was shortly after my return to Canada that I first met
Monica.
Monica’s Story
“My physician, Dr. Bruce Hoffman told me about you. I don’t really know what you do
but I’ll take any help right now. I have cancer and I have maybe four or five months left, but I
am not going anywhere. I will do whatever it takes to beat this thing.” I could sense the fear
had developed with her husband in Calgary. They had no children. Monica was looking for a
miracle, if not a cure. She wanted more time to live. Now she sat across from me in my small
“Monica, we need to work fast. Let’s connect you to your Soul,” I began.
“Later, we may review some past lives to see if there is anything there that can help. We
will meet with your guides and see what they suggest. I have seen miracles happen so let’s try
our best.”
Because I felt time was something we did not have, we booked three sessions within the
next ten days. I invited Joan Churcher, my psychologist friend, to join us for the past life
sessions.
Monica had never worked with a spiritual consultant, so my first task was to remove her
fears. To help her achieve a state of calm, I recorded some meditations and visualizations she
could listen to while in treatment. At that time I was using an old tape recorder to record the
sessions, and the recordings were not very clear. The day after I saw Monica, I had someone
“I hope you will not be offended. Your work is very meaningful and healing for people.
Monica knows the better the sound quality of the tapes, the better effect it will have. She really
The gift was a very expensive Sony professional tape-recorder with a five-year warranty.
Unaccustomed as I was to such generosity, I was very touched. From then on I recorded
hundreds of client sessions using this machine. It proved to be invaluable and I treasure it till
today.
When our sessions were done, Monica left the country for a special cancer treatment. I
heard nothing until six months later when one day I received a call from her husband Brad.
Monica was close to death he said, requesting me to visit them. I went accompanied by Joan
Churcher. Monica was in critical condition and barely able to speak. She indicated she wanted to
be alone with me, so Brad and her care-giver left the room.
As I sat by Monica’s bedside and held her hand, she opened her eyes and stared into
mine. Helpless tears rolled down her cheeks. “I’m not ready to go. I will give you whatever you
want, Ruby; I just want one miracle. I need only a few more months. Please Ruby, do
something.”
“I can’t remember, but I can’t leave without completing it.” She was panicking, her
voice was breaking and I could barely hear her. Still holding her hand I said, “Monica, I will
pray for you to remember. Just relax and close your eyes and you will be shown what you are
meant to do.”
“I see a centre for healing. There are practitioners, holistic and traditional. There is a
prayer and meditation room, and a library, too. It is a place where people can heal and be healed.
“Where is it, Monica?” I asked gently, without cutting off her flow.
“There is water, maybe a river nearby, gardens and flowers,” she said.
“Describe it with more detail,” I asked, wanting her to be fully conscious of her vision.
“I can see it all. I see the people who are there. There is a central hall with big windows
facing into the gardens. The grass is lush green. There are yellow and white flowers. And I
hear the sound of water somewhere near. Oh yes! There are birds and white butterflies.”
As she spoke, she moved fully into her vision. She expressed everything she was
experiencing and as she did, her voice kept getting clearer and louder. She seemed to be soaring,
and glowed with the colour of good health. This was not the person I had encountered when I
“Ruby, I have the finances to make this happen, I just need time. Will you work with
“Yes, of course,” I said connecting with her vision. She pressed my hand gently as if to
“Monica, you have already manifested your vision. It is already there. You have seen it
for yourself. Now please let go and relax; your desire will come into completion, I promise
you.”
“Ruby, I want to be a healer just like you. Can I be with you and watch you work?” she
asked me.
“I don’t know where I’m going and I’m scared,” she whispered. I could feel her fear.
“Monica, there is a beautiful white eagle waiting. Go with her and she will take you to a
“I see it!” Those were her last words. Then a tear rolled down her left cheek, I don’t
know whether of joy or sadness. After that, Monica entered another space. She looked so
peaceful. For another ten minutes I sat with her in absolute silence. Then, I gently slipped my
Joan and I got into the car with tears rolling down our cheeks. We did not know whether
to mourn or to celebrate. The next day Brad called. He said that after we left, Monica had
slipped into a semi-conscious state and passed away two and half hours later.
I would not admit it outwardly, but Monica’s death was a big blow. I had wanted to save
her, not help her die. I had done what I could and had obviously failed. I felt responsible for
giving her false hope. I had promised her the work we did was with the Soul, and Soul can never
die before it has fulfilled its promise. Often at night I would lay awake feeling the loss. I had
committed to help her, and felt I would do this at any cost. Reluctantly, I let go. I had witnessed
the play before, when Om Baba had fulfilled his promise even after passing away. And though at
that moment I couldn’t even take a wild guess, I knew things would come to a full circle. The
sense of fulfillment lay pending; all I had to do was await the miracle.
My friendship with Dr. Noel was of mutual benefit. He had become a major support in
my life, especially during those first few months when I went back to work after being so ill. He
helped me a great deal with the legal issues and bringing closure to the business and other
complexities of my life.
This was not all, from my extensive experience with clients and their Soul journeys, I
realized there are masters and guides for every state and dimension. Dr. Noel had helped me
negotiate and communicate with forces beyond my capability. I was thankful for his support.
He would often look at me and say, “Ruby, you are too pure for your own good. I hope
Now free of the burden of resolving these complexities, I threw myself fully into my
work. I moved effortlessly from one case to the next, and one day to the next. Again, I felt that
in order to be more, I had to do more, and with this dedication I folded each case as I would fold
clothes after washing and ironing. And, just as hanging clothes in the closet gives some sense of
pleasure, I experienced each client and each case similarly. Each one fulfilled me in every way.
They connected me to my Source, gave me the opportunity to express my genius, and even paid
me handsomely.
But the gift I cherished the most was when I realized my potential to love. This truly was
the gift of a lifetime. I worked hard and fast because I knew there was more. The only time I
became stressed was when I did not consciously realize that everything in my life was as exactly
as it should be.
I was blossoming and bursting with life, and this is when I had four dreams that would
Chapter Five
Into the Valley of Death
I dream that I am flying in a gondola-like object over oceans and vast tracts of land. I
can also see myself fly high above a mountain range and fear is welling up inside me, as I am
afraid of heights. I start to drop and begin falling hundreds of feet through the air with no one to
witness my fall. When I finally land on the barren landscape below, my body turns into a ball of
energy, twisted and damaged from the fall. I cannot move my limbs. I am frozen with fear.
I don’t know how long I stayed in that position, but when I awoke from the dream I was
lying in bed twisted and curled, and trembling with pain and fear. My heart was palpitating and
I could not move out of that position for an hour or so. Luckily, my daughter entered my
bedroom and with her there, I was able to position myself better. But each time I thought of the
scene, my heart rate shot up with anxiety. I knew this was more than a dream, and this place
existed somewhere on the planet. The physical intensity and the fear I felt convinced me this
dream was real. That I gave in to my fear made me feel stupid. I prayed for the dream to return
Flying and traveling in the Soul body was natural for me. I would often travel over
houses, cities, land, and water. I would even stop and check out whatever caught my interest.
This mostly happened in both waking and dream state, and I often remembered my excursions
afterwards. After a certain time I could not tell the difference between the two states, they were
both real. Occasionally, I would be forced to return against my will. Once the connection was
broken I was not always able to reconnect, and this made me hopping mad.
I shared the dream with my psychologist friend, Joan Churcher, who tried to work with it.
But we eventually decided it was best not to disturb the energy. I was still unaware that this
Again, as I fly I pass over the point where I had previously fallen. Although I cannot
recognize this desert like mountain range, I have the distinct feeling it is a restricted area. Then,
below me I see armoured vehicles and checkpoints, uniformed guards and army officials. I can
also see protected zones fenced off with barbed wire. When I hear the warning sirens go off, I
know I’ve been spotted by radar. Anxiety grips me and once again I crash land directly on the
When I awoke, I felt as though I had been struck down. The pain in my right side was
excruciating. Truly frightened, I lay in bed almost paralyzed by the experience, too afraid to call
for help. Many hours later, I finally made my way to the bathroom where I vomited until there
I knew for sure now it was more than a dream, but was unable to connect the dots. I was
annoyed for becoming fearful and falling again. And even though I determined to complete the
mission the next time with grace and strength, I could not. Discouraged, I also felt weak and
vulnerable and not worthy of spiritual adventures. This time I requested guidance and my prayers
were answered.
The final dream began as the others. This time I cross the snow clad mountains and spot
a small mud hut in a village below. I descend and approach the hut. A mother in her late
thirties with her young daughter welcomes me. They escort me into a cold, dark room where the
only source of heat and light is a wood-burning stove. I have trouble breathing in the high
altitude, and the woman and her daughter cover me with blankets. I notice the young girl’s rosy
cheeks shining in the firelight, as they offer me hot milk and sweets.
Then as they sit with me near the fire, the mother asks my name and my mother’s name.
She seems to recognize my mother’s name, but not mine. Then I hold out my hand and show her
the symbol of OM written on my palm in golden light. As she looks at me with remembrance, I
I awoke from this last dream with no need to interpret it. Now convinced this place
existed, I felt a great urge to find it. It was calling me and I had to be present there. I felt it
might be near India, but I could not locate the place. Despite the fear in my dream, my
desperation to be there began increasing by the day. This is when I had a vision of a tiny bird.
Winter had set in and all the other birds were flying to warmer places except this tiny
thing. She stayed back awaiting a message and soon she became covered with snow and there,
This was a strong sign for me that I should leave the cold Calgary winter for a warmer
place. I jumped out of the sofa chair, and immediately booked my ticket to New Delhi, India. It
was late February 1995, and on the day my plane took off, Calgary was hit by a storm with
About a week later, my aunt invited me to her home for lunch to meet a swami from the
Aurobindo Ashram. When I arrived, I found Swamiji seated with another man in his mid-forties.
“This is Sushil Kumar,” said Swamiji. “He is a senior criminal lawyer at the Supreme
Court of India. Sushil spent many years studying different religions and philosophies. He has
had the opportunity to live with masters, and all this with his busy law practice. He was on the
team of lawyers defending Indira Gandhi, our prime minister, when she was placed behind bars.”
Sushil gave me a warm smile and said, “I am honoured to meet you. I knew Mr. Bedi,
your father. I had the opportunity to meet him many years ago in the café at the courthouse. I
was a junior then and I still remember how I mustered up all my courage and walked over to his
I was touched, but I moved my attention to Swamiji who was gazing inquiringly at me. I
What kind of a question is that? I thought to myself; certainly the wise swami is a
trickster trying to trip me up. But when he repeated the question, I knew he was serious.
“Shucks!” I thought. “This sage has nailed me.” He was right. I was so busy helping
others manifests their life purpose and dreams, I did not think about myself. It was true that
while I had the gift to know other Souls, I had not yet connected to mine. I had become so
occupied with others and their well being, I had forgotten about myself.
“Swamiji, you are right,” I admitted. “I know others, but I do not know myself. It is also
true that I have so far manifested many dreams, but not myself.”
“So you have met your dreams but not the dreamer.” Swamiji was persistent.
Then, hoping for some insight, I proceeded to describe my four powerful dreams to him.
“It is Ladakh, Swamiji!” exclaimed Sushil. “Don’t ask me how but I know it is Ladakh
she visited in her dreams. It has the desert, the mountains, and the army presence. But there is
one problem. It is still early March, off-season, and Leh, the capital, will be almost shut down
Swamiji closed his eyes and remained silent for five minutes. When he opened his eyes
“You two were meant to meet,” he said. “No one can stop destiny from unfolding.
Lightning, thunder, or storm cannot stall this occurrence. Child, go; your guides are with you.”
I left with blessings, but disappointed that I might not be able to visit Ladakh on this trip.
Journey to Ladakh
“Keep seeking until the search gives you up; you will then have reached home.”
Sushil offered me a ride to my sister’s home. I shared my journey and asked him about
“The seeking gave me up,” he laughed. “No, seriously, it happened when there was no
“When there was no more duality. I kept asking questions until one day I became
conscious of the Source and the questioner, from where the questions were arising. I realized the
questions were meant simply to lead me to the questioner, my own inner self. With
contemplation and meditation upon the questioner, I was able to sever the cords of illusion. My
eyes opened and I found my being. That was the death of the seeker. I still travel far and wide,
I knew what he meant. I was starting to sense a silent presence in him. I thanked him for
the ride, and as I opened the car door to get out he said, “Feel free to call if you need someone to
After doing my own check, I soon confirmed the place I was seeking was indeed Ladakh,
in the Himalayas. The landscape featured tall mountains with an altitude of over 12,000 feet and
a barren desert plateau. Because of a border dispute, the Indian army was stationed there.
“I have some good news,” he said. “The courts have closed today due to some strike.
Believe me, this has never happened before, and I think it is a sign I am meant to accompany you
to Ladakh. I learned that Air India has a flight to Leh tomorrow morning and there are few seats
available. The hotels are shut down, but the army commander stationed there is the friend of a
Next morning we took off on the most memorable journey, and as we neared Leh I
became excited, nervous, and thrilled. The mountains were identical to those I had seen in my
dream, and so were the soldiers, barbed wire, protected zones, and army vehicles. That is when I
“Please don’t die on me,” he laughed. “I didn’t bring enough money with me to carry
you back!”
We checked into a modest hostel- the only accommodation available, and without
wasting time, and Sushil dashed off to the District Magistrate’s office. We were in a restricted
area and needed special permits. I felt a desperate need to cross over the mountain range and find
Sushil made special arrangements for us to join an army convoy, and despite my drifting
in and out of consciousness, before nightfall we had made it safely to the other side.
When the driver stopped at the first village, I knew immediately it was not the place and I
told him he must continue further. Sure enough, five miles down the mud road we came upon
the village and there was the hut with the mother and daughter. And, just as they had in my
dream, they welcomed me. With no electricity, it was hard to see the surroundings. They took
me to the same tiny room with the wood stove and warmed me up with the same old blankets.
By this time, I was in very bad shape and with no medical assistance whatsoever. It was
the young girl who then began to rub my feet with the special oil. Being in touch with another
body was somewhat comforting; this is when I noticed her rosy cheeks glowing in the light of
It was freezing cold and at one point I did not think I would make it. Not being
acclimatized to the high altitude, I was unable to breathe. Just then, I felt the presence of Shirdi
Sai Baba. “Baba,” I pleaded, “please release me from this anguish. I can’t take it anymore.”
“It’s not over,” he said. “There is more and this journey will bring wholeness. You will
become who you are.” “Be in surrender and let go, and you must leave here before ten a.m.,” I
“Sushil, please hold my hand, and don’t leave until I regain consciousness. Get me out of
here before ten a.m. tomorrow and for the next three days don’t let anyone touch my body; even
With these words, I left myself in the hands of a stranger who did not know my journey
or me. Sushil silently followed my orders and at ten in the morning we began the journey back
to Leh.
was the smoothest movement. I could see that my body was struggling to stay awake, not
Suddenly I was everywhere, in the snow, the sunlight, the clear blue sky, the car, the
driver, and even Ruby. I was present as everything and in everything. There was no sense of
what happened, limited by my sense perception, memory, and language. The most I can say is
As my physical awareness began to return, I realized I did not know how to re-enter my
struggling body. It was like trying to squeeze toothpaste back into a tube. The last forty miles to
Leh were unbearable. I don’t remember much after that, but it was another three days before I
At one point, I have memory of meeting with Jesus Christ. “This space has the vibrations
you need to manifest,” he said. “It could not have been induced any other way. The external
will ignite your internal force. This environment carries the stimuli you need to manifest your
being.” He then added the instructions, “Be at the airport on Thursday before ten a.m. You will
This is how I interpreted his message. Then he descended into my being and soon my
“We cannot leave,” said Sushil when I told him. “The army is on alert and there is a
curfew. They found infiltrators right here in Leh. Besides, you cannot travel in this condition. It
is three days now and I thought I had lost you. I was barely able to get a few drops of water into
you.” Sushil was holding on but I could sense his extreme concern. He knew he had no choice
That day I was able to make it to the bathroom. When I saw myself in the corroded
mirror I was shocked. My body was swollen, my skin a pale bluish-green colour. My hair was
like nylon and I looked like a dead person. My chest hurt, I was breathless and in pain, and I
ached everywhere.
arranged by the army commanding officer. The airport was being patrolled closely and there
Then, shortly after ten a.m., an army personnel came rushing to us. “You are very lucky,”
he said. “A plane has arrived for a diplomat and his wife trapped here. I have their permission;
you can fly to Delhi with them. Other than this, there are no scheduled flights..” And this is how
Back in Delhi, I quickly found the medical help I needed. Even so, it took me six weeks
to recover. I was intrigued that Sushil never once questioned anything. All he could say was, “I
prayed to God, ‘Please don’t let anything happen to this crazy woman; at least not while she is in
my care.’” I was not surprised when he told me that he had met and experienced the same guides
as I had.
Following my inner direction had taken me to the brink of death, and I expected a
brilliant flash of insight and understanding. However, this did not happen. Yes, I realized there
was likely some past life connection to this area of the world, perhaps even to these people. As
well, there are symbolic components of this story about death and re-birth, the death of one state
of consciousness and the birth of a new. In this context, what happened was so subtle I almost
missed it.
I felt that I had awakened vibrations that may have been dormant before. My physical
presence, awareness, and energy had lifted. I realized that the experience of going beyond was
within me. The silence I had experienced was from the non- verbal state. There is no
Back at my aunt’s house, the swami had asked, “Can you manifest yourself?” and I
realized I could not. When I saw Jesus during the ordeal he had said, “You came here to
manifest the vibration you need and it could not have been awakened any other way. This
And so with this new vibration induced by the near death experience, a new, or perhaps
the true Ruby was finally manifesting. I carried the memory as a vibration in my being. Within a
short time, this vibration began to take on a life of its own as it expanded through my entire
being. I was full of presence that could be touched, felt, and experienced, and this experience
It was never more obvious than now that inspiration can source the experiences that feed
our Soul and help us develop our potential. Our thoughts and actions are in line with our purpose
and our spiritual intelligence. Our timing is impeccable and we are attuned to both the exterior
forces and environment, and our interior mind and Soul space. Inspiration also gives us
Transformation occurs in the blink of an eye, but the human mind is too slow to catch the
movement. We usually catch the tail-end and through memory, work our way back and trying to
recapture the essence in our own way. In doing so, we lose out on the direct experience. At best,
we have an idea of what happened; and from that we usually fabricate the story.
Our conceptual mind designs the plot and our creative thinking, makes the happening
seem real. Our intellect and senses provide the sound and light effects. In the process, the
experience is reduced from a cosmic act to a personalized act. We now adopt the happening as
our story and since it is our creation we become attached to it. This is stage one.
Stage two occurs when we revisit the happening and give it a meaning. The same story
gains a new twist. So now we have three things going: What actually happened; how we
perceived what happened; and third our interpretation of what happened. Now multiply this by
the number of times and no of people you expose this story to, now what you get is a beautiful
fiction but not the truth. Not the whole picture; just scraps and fragments of it.
While a collective picture produced by mass thinking should be close to the whole truth,
it is not, because whole is when each and every aspect of the whole is original and authentic and
not put together by some conditioned fiction. Since each story is a twist on the original, putting
them together does not constitute the whole truth. To see truth, a deeper, higher, and wider
perspective is required.
When I was a young girl, I spent a lot of time within myself, in silence. I loved spiritual
alchemy. Sometimes I would fast-forward my life and pretend to be dead. By stepping back and
looking at myself from a distant perspective, I could detach myself from emotion and see a
bigger picture. Then I would look back at my life from this vantage point.
Had I done everything I wanted to do? Was there more I could have done? If not, I
would rearrange my life the way I wanted it to be, until I could see myself as complete, fully
functioning, and whole. Then I would settle into a feeling of total satisfaction and peace. Even
though the game of playing dead may have been a bit morbid, it kept me detached so I could
Even now, I perceive my body as a spiritual playground where body, mind, and Soul are
in a three-way partnership. On a good day, I become the player, the observer, and the
playground. I listen to Soul as it speaks through visions, questions, and dreams. I allow its
inspiration to guide my actions. But mostly, I give Soul centre stage and allow it to orchestrate
my life.
Chapter Six
“How dare he take you away to some forsaken land? What if something had happened?”
fumed my brother-in-law, a Supreme Court lawyer. When I arrived back in Delhi, my sister and
her husband were shocked when they saw me. “That man (meaning Sushil) should be shot dead.”
“Sushil is a very responsible man,” I defended. “He is knowledgeable, wise, and very
spiritual, and moreover he was just supporting my choice. And by the way, he also practices law
This was just too much for my brother-in-law who often argued that spirituality was for
the weak. He had no respect for any person or belief that did not match his.
“Bullshit!” he exclaimed. “He is no lawyer. I have never seen or heard of him. He’s just
a con artist playing on a woman’s weak mind.” That was usually how our discussions ended
It took six weeks and several doctor visits for me to recuperate, and this time afforded me
the opportunity to get to know Sushil. He invited me and my sisters to dinner at his home and
introduced us to his wife and children. He told stories I found fascinating, and his peaceful and
After Ladakh, we had developed a bond which required no words. Although Sushil was
skilled with language and communication, when it came to personal experiences he chose to
remain silent. He preferred not to fill his space with words, experiences or even time.
I was apprehensive about going back to Canada. I didn’t know what I wanted next but I
“Sushil, will you come with me?” I asked. “I’ll introduce you to my clients. They would
love to meet a person like you.” He graciously accepted my invitation, and over the next
Sushil was the first human being I’d ever met who accepted me exactly as I was. He
would call me a ‘phenomenon’. One day I asked him, “Sushil, is there anything I could do to
better myself?”
“No!” he replied emphatically. “That would be the biggest act of violence against your
self. Violence stems from non-acceptance. Unmet expectations result in pain and suffering. Be
kind to yourself and enjoy your beauty, you will fall in love with yourself as you are. Without
I knew this to be true. How can one expect to love one’s self while trying to change
something that they perceive to be negative within? Desires and dreams are the signs of our
unutilized potential while the present is a gift we don’t unwrap. Sadly, I admitted I too had
seldom enjoyed this gift. To me, the future was where I should be. When I was with Sushil, I
began to get comfortable in my own skin, my home, and my environment. Living with myself
Within myself, I refer to the Ladakh experience as “My Death”, my previous perspective
was replaced with new alive vibrations that I could feel and touch. I began enjoying my own
presence. For hours I would now sit with myself, aware of every cell, muscle and organ,
enjoying a heart opening previously not experienced. Soon I was overflowing with deep
presence; it was alive and silent. I cherished my new gift as never before.
I lost the urge to speak and desire to think. My tingling vibrations of loving presence
were contagious; everyone who came in contact with me felt the effects, even over the phone. It
felt like I had become part of some celestial world with angelic lightness. During this time, I
recorded my third audiocassette, The Silent Presence, my way of sharing this presence with
others. It was also during this time that I met a man with a most unusual presence.
Eckhart Tolle and I bonded instantly. The best selling author of The Power of Now and A
New Earth was in was here in Calgary from Vancouver to promote his first book. We met over
tea at a clients place and spent a good deal of time chatting about our spiritual paths. Our first
hug was an unusual melody of vibrations. We were like two baby deer in a playing field. We
decided to meet again and at some point I introduced him to Sushil during one of our trips to
Vancouver. I watched them sit for a long period in total silence. Finally, I prodded him,
“Eckhart, say something. Sushil would love for you to share some wisdom.”
He turned to me and whispered, “That’s exactly what I am doing. It is not often I find
A petite man of few words, Eckhart has a cute smile but a mega presence. Hugging him
was like touching a 1000-volt live wire, which would leave you shaking for hours, if not a few
days.
“You are an iconoclast,” he said to me one day, sitting in my living room after lunch.
This was probably the third or the fourth time we had met socially.
“So Eckhart,” I teased, “Can you see yourself on Oprah? Because I do!” I laughed.
“I see you there too,” he answered, smiling at me affectionately. Being on Oprah meant
We shared experiences like two children sharing their toys. We talked about our
favourite philosophers, mystics, and sages. We toyed humorously with awakening, self-
realization, and enlightenment. Once, I suddenly asked, “Hey! Will I know when I become
Within a few months, I began to wrap up my spiritual practice and informed my clients of
“I have shared all I know with you at this time,” I told them. “From here on, everything I
say or do will be a repeat. We all have accumulated a lot of knowledge, which we must put to
good use before it becomes a burden. It is now your time to share, and my time to go back into
silence. Let us live our life practicing who we are NOW!” I said, infusing them with enthusiasm.
Then I shared my experiences of Ladakh to the best of my ability, giving them a taste of my
experience. I injected them with words, presence, and whatever else I could before I bid them
farewell. That night at the University Hall there was love, tears, joy, and sadness.
After the meditation, we all sparkled with magic, especially my friend, Dr. Brian
Abelson, a chiropractor and Tai Chi master. His palms were exuding fragrance that night and
everyone who touched his palms began also to exude the fragrant scent. The atmosphere was
electrifying and people became ecstatic. Row after row, each person was transferring the
fragrance to the next. One elderly woman who had lost her sense of smell, cried with joy as she
rubbed her hands after Brian’s touch. “I can smell,” she exclaimed. “I have the fragrance too.”
After I bid them farewell, with love and respect we all left the hall where we had gathered
One more time, I was giving up what I had created and developed to step into the
unknown. I had no idea what I wanted, where I was going, or how I would get there, but I had
faith that as I left the old, the new would appear. For most of my life I had been unaware of the
entry, but I always knew the exit. I would begin by connecting with my Soul and trust that
much. My friends and relatives, on the other hand, were worried sick. They thought I was
losing my mind to voluntarily give up a successful and desirous practice, and my only financial
resource. But success had another meaning for me. Success meant fulfilling my promise,
whether taking or giving. The freedom to explore my inner realm, and to say no when the going
was good was proof that I had reached the pinnacle of my success.
I set up a non-profit organization and started to promote other teachers and healers. Now
taking a back seat, surprisingly, I felt the same amount of pleasure as I did before. I rather
enjoyed supporting others in their calling. Seeing an opportunity, I used the time to write my
first book, The Divine I, where I described my awakening and experiences. Then, I took out a
line of credit on my house and made plans to head back to my roots, New Delhi, India.
Soul Partnership
where many teachers and healers made presentations. This event proved to be the beginning of
another journey. In attendance were about over a dozen Sikh men and women from Edmonton.
They were shocked to meet and learn about me, especially after experiencing one of my
meditations. “You are a Bedi,” they exclaimed, “the same lineage as Guru Nanak.10 Where have
you been all this time?” They stuck to me like moths to a flame, ready to be burned in the fire of
spirit. They all bought signed copies of my book, The Divine I, and then competed with each
10
Guru Nanak was the first Sikh Guru.
It was in August 1996, that I accepted one of these invitations and found about forty
people waiting for me, all seated on the floor. They were waiting to meet the “woman-guru”
which elevated their own sense of self. My hostess, Rajinder, welcomed me warmly. She
opened her heart and home and insisted I stay in their home. She then introduced me to a
fascinating woman in her eighties who exuded a youthfulness not often seen or experienced.
Round and chubby, she was dressed all in white and her silver-gray hair shone through the white
“Ruby, this is my mother, Ma ji,” said Rajinder. “She is very spiritual and has already
checked you out. She says you have the light of the Master plus more. She says you will soon
Ma ji opened her arms and hugged me. It was like hugging myself; we were both
vibrating at the same frequency! As we both recognized the bond, we fell into each other’s arms
In those first few moments, I did not know how important she would become to me. In
her, I would find all the qualities I admired and hoped each woman would have; strength, love,
courage, beauty, charm, and clarity. She was brave enough to confront any weakness or anyone
Everyone called her Ma ji, which is Hindi for ‘mother’ and sometimes ‘grandmother’.
She was religious and disciplined and knew what she wanted. She rose every morning at four to
read the sacred text. Like me, she was clairvoyant and could see the gurus and guides, receive
direct messages from them, and interpret them for others. With me, she shared her childhood
stories about her guides and how they would wiggle her big toe at two-thirty every morning so
she would awaken to meditate and pray. She daringly followed her guides and lived her life
She had given the family the green light, and the entire family was now free to embrace
me. Within hours, they had accepted me into their hearts and their home.
“Rajinder is his mother and we call him Sunny. Tell me something about him.”
In that first glance, I realized that my meeting this family was no coincidence. I was
meant to meet this man. It was a full body confirmation I often received from within when
encountering truth. I could not help focusing on the photo as I shared the guidance with
everyone there.
“You will soon meet Inder,” predicted Rajinder. “He will support your work, and help
you in whatever you need. He will love and care for you and be with you. Wait until you meet
While Inder’s mother was making external promises on his behalf, I felt the same words
being repeated from within. Something within was promising me a soulful future and it would
all begin when I met this man. But I was also picking up that as much as our paths were
And then the thought came, if anyone can get into me and destroy me, it will be him. I
don’t know why this thought came. Although tempted to look into it, I ignored it. My body
sensations became ecstatic and exhilarating with passing images and thoughts of relatedness,
One month later, when I traveled to India that September, I finally met Inder in person.
Our first meeting was cordial and I kept the conversation light and friendly, revealing little of my
inner knowing. He was younger than me so I quickly adopted the role of friend and guide. One
day, he asked me to check out our past lives and see if we had a connection.
“Our frequencies are similar, that of twin souls designed to fulfill a common purpose. We
studied under the same masters and have had many lives together,” I reported. “In this life we
will fulfill the Soul Promises we have made to ourselves, each other, and our Masters and
teachers. There are several who watch over and support us, and there will be others who come,
as we need to facilitate our work. Our purpose is to develop infrastructure first within and then
outwardly to facilitate healing, wellness, and wholesomeness. We will develop projects through
which we will awaken intelligence, enlighten minds, instill awareness, and inspire self-growth.
We will develop a way to fully manifest the holistic potential in this incarnation. Once we
connect with our true selves, the project and the people connected to us will appear.” Sunny
“We need to be compatible and respectful to each other because any distractions can
delay or even abort the mission. The more we connect within, the easier our path will be. The
specific reason for our purpose will be revealed along with the energy, intelligence, and life force
to manifest it.”
I knew I mustn’t reveal too much because I was not sure how awakened he was to his
own Soul Promise. If I continued, I risked losing credibility and stood the danger of being
declared a fake.
“I was your guide,” I said of our previous relationship. He smiled and said nothing, but a
“We were together, there was a lot of love between us,” he said. I knew he was partially
correct, without love for self, each other, joined commitments don’t become possible. However,
as his present goal was to draw to himself success, ample wealth, and a name, the entire message
was a bit of a mouthful. As humble as he was, he expected all these things to come to him
“If it is in my destiny, then it will come to me whether I work hard or sit still,” he
declared. “I don’t believe I need to be better and do more to have more.” He was behaving like
a child and I kind of knew why. He had been with several Gurus and guides and each one had
probably lured him and promised some returns to be in their company. His cynicism was valid.
“Lectures and more lectures,” he said. “I think all teachings should be banned and
everyone should uncover and follow their own truth. Teaching is just another form of
conditioning.”
Inder wanted in on all the details. What, when, where, and how. He loved the idea of
enlightenment but backed off when he felt it could mean work and giving up things. “What
would it take to manifest everything you have told me?” he asked again.
“First,” I began, “remembrance of who you are. As you connect fully with yourself the
rest will unfold naturally.” I was not yet ready to break the news yet.
Our frequencies resonated differently; it would take time to unify our field of perception.
I had an advantage; I knew him, his Soul script. But what I was sure of was still a matter of
choice for him. I was more restrained than I would be with my clients. Here I was part of the
cast and played a significant role. As I read him, I read a part of my own script. I was thrilled
that finally I would have a dynamic, vibrant, and youthful partner to play it with, and we could
do wonders together. Along with this would come a life I had dared not dream of.
Even so, I was deeply concerned about how difficult it would be to manifest this plan
breath-by-breath, moment-to-moment. Ahead I could see a lot of hard work and tough times,
and in order to successfully materialize the intended results, I would need to be alert and strong.
“I could lose myself,” I thought in dismay. I was simply not ready for more challenges.
The more information I retrieved for Inder, the more my role became visible, and the more
nervous I became. At one point in anger, I asked my guides if it was possible to change my Soul
plan and do something else! Then I thought, once a duck, always a duck, at least for that one
incarnation. My history, biology, psychology, and chemistry were all designed and chosen for
my purpose. Even the geographical locations, along with culture, religions, and environment had
been selected to my choice. I had to muster the courage to live the choices I had made with full
consciousness.
It was more troubling to know that I would be letting down others involved and
compromise their and my purpose. When I found myself getting tense and stressed, I decided to
give up thinking. It was futile and would create an unnecessary drain on my life force.
A few weeks later, as a birthday gift, I invited Inder to attend his first healing workshop
in Agra. One evening after the workshop, we sat in the car and watched the sun go down on the
Taj Mahal. The white monument shining in silver-blue light in the reflection of the full moon
and the river beside it, all blended with Inder’s unique silence were enchanting and I felt the
same magic I did as a child. This new inspiration was breaking down the façade, along with any
And then some memory began to return. It had to, as Taj Mahal was built from the
loving memory of a Mogul King for his wife. The seventh wonder of the world is a reminder of
true love, passion, and romance. Truth is contagious and so it was for us. The moon and the
A new chapter had begun. To begin with, I would have to endure Inder’s frustration. He
did not like to be dependent upon me or anyone else to fulfill his dream; it made him feel
“Why do I need to work at it if it’s part of my blueprint? What good are the guides if we
have to face the challenges? How can it be my purpose if I cannot remember it?”
There was more, more, and more. Outwardly, he would ask questions and express doubt
but inwardly, he really craved to communicate with the guides himself. His desire was to see
He pushed every one of my buttons over the next few years. But, as nerve-wracking as it
was, I stuck by my promise to support the vision of healing. I saw it as no different than sticking
my neck out and risking my life to travel to Ladakh on an inspiration. My prayers in those days
went something like this: “God, either let him remember or let me forget. Take us both from
darkness to light.” This prayer kept me from getting confused, angry, and hurt.
Many a time I was tempted to walk away from this joint commitment, which required
every drop of patience and ounce of willpower. I was tested, my words challenged, and my
integrity questioned. But despite it all, I stood tall in my promise, I felt that every challenge was
part of the big jig saw puzzle. I supported Inder on his journey, I was fulfilling my own promise
too.
By and by, we Soul traveled and explored inner realms. We touched different
dimensions and met with Soul friends, light entities, angels, and other beings, and retrieved our
wealth of knowledge. In a short time, we had awakened the gifts we needed within us. The
inner journey helped regain the power, intelligence, and life force we would require for this
manifestation.
Strong-willed and bound by some promise we supported each other and waited for the
big picture to be revealed. I knew from experience the signs; when ideas become inspiration
with the life force and when urges cannot be ignored, then it is time.
Finally the door began to open, and we began to meet people and get involved with
projects close to our hearts. We started a primary school with yoga and meditation. We set up a
healing and meditation centre for young males at an orphanage in a Himalayan town. We began
conducting workshops, and helping others connect to themselves through various techniques.
These and many other projects gave us first-hand experience of healing in various forms. We
I found myself being forced into silence so I turned to writing. It was a great way of
becoming conscious, and as long as I kept my eye on the vision, life was beautiful. But the
moment I lost sight of it, I experienced instant stress, pain, and anguish. Although Inder was not
one to judge or analyze, he was quick to show me the mirror. I was free to connect with all of
me, without denying anything that I feared might be wrong or improper. Finally, I was able to
see clearly the numerous personas I had developed over the years as a survival tool, along with
the ghosts I was housing within. Forced now to look at the way I communicated, thought, and
believed, I lifted the veil off each and every persona. Much like peeling away an onion, I kept on
Dreams don’t happen, we make them happen; and when they do happen they tend to
replace the old artwork of subtle impressions that we have once created, embodied and expressed
with new designs of colors and shapes that we now intend to experience. The space that once
served as a platform to orchestrate our desires again fills with new desires. Dreams are can be
replaced but not without repercussions and even resistance. Something has to be surrendered, left
Chapter Seven
The Serpent
When traveling within for the purpose of retrieving wisdom, knowledge, and intelligence,
one can land in the most unexpected places. Most people wish, or at least hope their past lives
have been rich and meaningful, even if the present one seems not. I have not yet met anyone
who believed they were a stray cat, and if a cat at all, they preferred it were Cleopatra’s cat, with
some powers. The dream for most, of course, is to have been Cleopatra herself!
embracing all aspects; good, evil, light, and dark. Inner travellers have often shared stories of
encountering both light and dark. Most of us are victims of duality, viewing light as good and
dark as evil. We try to resist what we perceive to be dark and desire only light. Some masters
have revealed their encounters freely, while others chose to focus on the lighter side of the
voyage. In my travels, I too have had my fair share of encounters with entities and dimensions
both intensely dark and vividly clear. The deeper the darkness, the more I connected to Source.
I realized that the dark was part of the light spectrum I needed to experience in order to
become conscious of all that exists. To be most effective, I would have to welcome everything
presented, transcend the mind, and utilize every opportunity. No physical training is complete
without resistance. Obstacles are intentionally placed in our path so we can develop endurance
and strength. We overcome fear and apprehension as we confront our deepest issues – old
patterns and ways of being that hang around like a ghost - and bust it with determination and the
power of self-love. The bigger the dream, the tougher the challenge.
As Inder and I moved toward our purpose in the outer world, we were also working
together in the inner realms. Our intention was to stimulate the intelligence and life force to
create events to make us more aware and increase our power to create. I called it “working
smart”. One of our dreams was to create an international techno-art and science educational
facility for young adults, to develop their super-conscious mind and unfold their skills and talents
in a healthy and wholesome environment. In the external, we were in the midst of locating lands
for this school in India in the year 2000, when we received a unique invitation.
“Join us this evening for tea,” said our friend Tarun. “and I will introduce you to my chief
guest, Swami Kuber. 11 The Swami is a long time congress affiliate, and because it is election
time he is honouring us with a visit.” Tarun came from a family of politicians and was related to
“Yes,” answered Tarun. “He a Tantric Yogi with unmatched powers and Siddhis.12 I
don’t know everything but he has been called ‘the king maker’.”
About a year before back in Edmonton, I had heard exactly the same thing from my
friend, Dr. Chatterji, a professor of biology with a keen interest in astrology. “Ruby,” he said,
“you are a woman with extraordinary power. You need to meet Swami Kuber. Connection with
him will give you the know-how to utilize this power to its full potential.
“But Doctor, how in the world would I manage that” I replied, “It will be like trying to
11
Kuber Swami: not his real name – I have changed it.
12
Siddhi: A Sanskrit word meaning "perfection", "accomplishment", "attainment", or "success". [1] Also used as a term for
spiritual power (or psychic ability.) These spiritual powers may vary from relatively simple forms of clairvoyance to being able
to levitate, be present at various different places simultaneously, to become as small as an atom, to materialize objects, to have
access to memories from past lives, and more. From Wikipedia.
“It will happen,” he predicted. “I can see it as part of your destiny.” Typical of Dr
Chatterji, he often came up with inspiring ideas and then dropped them in the lap of destiny.
I remembered reading about this Swami with extraordinary powers. Some admired him,
but to others he was a predator and a con artist. Between these two, there were many who knew
him but refused to discuss it. In India, it is common not to confront or openly defy a person with
power; most will choose to suffer in silence. The Swami’s photographs with the powerful elite of
the world were proof of his national and international alliances. He began his spiritual journey as
a young man living and meditating in the jungles of U.P., and through rigid discipline and
practices he attained supernatural powers. As one story goes, while in deep meditation and
penance he was bitten by a cobra which awakened his kundalini shakti. The cobra was no
ordinary snake, but a spiritual master who manifested as a cobra. I remember chuckling and
I could hardly wait for the evening. We reached Tarun’s home, which was more like a
mansion, a bit early so as to miss nothing. At five o’clock sharp, the Swami arrived with his
entourage of devotees and several junior swamis. As Inder and I exchanged glances, we could
not help laughing. The Swami reminded me of a monstrous comic book character. Dressed in
crisp white silk with brocade borders, he and his group sported long silver gray hair and beards.
The Swami sat in the big sofa chair placed in the center and moved his head from left to
right, scanning every person in the room. Some got a smile, some just a glance, and a few were
“A school! What for?” exclaimed the Swami. “You should set up a healing centre,” he
said, fixing us in his gaze. And then after a brief pause, “Did you know that gems were used for
healing purposes and Ruby was one of the most potent gems known to bring healing? Then,
“Ruby,” I responded, jumping out of my skin. I could not believe he had pinned me. In
that moment I had made my decision to experience the Swami whichever way possible. Some
thing inside me was compelling me not to say NO to whatever he would offer, even if that meant
temporary discomfort.
“Please be my guests for a special celebration,” the Swami was more than gracious. I
noticed he was paying more attention to us than anyone else. “We have our Navtratri Puja
celebration for which forty-two pundits from all over India will join us and we will pray for nine
“We will certainly try,” Inder promised after a short exchange. On the way home, Inder
was skeptical. “What do you want from him. There are thousands of swamis and what do they
“Inder, consider it part of the plan, we have to go,” I said. I was determined and had
made up my mind to visit the Swami. It took me several days to convince him, but I did, and off
Swami was known to be wealthy which was obvious as we drove through the gates of the
ashram. It was more like a palace- four storeys of marble floors, tall rosewood and mahogany
doors, spacious visiting areas, galleries with expensive art and statues, and many lavish
furnishings.
As we entered the gates, we noticed a dozen guards with rifles, and more stationed on
each floor. Why would a man of god need so much security? Something raised my antenna and I
could feel an excitement brewing in me. When taken to our living quarters, we were pleasantly
shocked to find it was the presidential suite on the same floor as the swami. Apparently, a prime
minister from a neighbouring country was the last guest to stay in this suite. We were told the
This time he was prepared, and as we entered his quarters, he began bombarding us with
details of who he thought we were at the mind, body, and Soul levels. He had obviously checked
“Ruby, you are a phenomenal healer and Inder, you are a businessman,” he declared. “I
can help you in your calling. Ruby can do her healing work at my estate villa in Los Angeles. I
have many Hollywood clients searching for peace and life purpose. Inder, I have a special
assignment for you. I will introduce you to the Nigerian diplomat who will set you up as an
agent to import and export specific products for the government of Nigeria. You will make more
than what you anticipate and in ten years of good business you could retire. Then you will have
the freedom to explore your Soul and be in touch with your spiritual side.”
Inder was not thrilled by this plan as his vision was to start his life’s work now, not in ten
years. And then the swami disclosed the last part of his plan which completely shocked us both.
“You must work separately,” he said. “After ten years you could work together. I can
only help you if you agree to meet this one condition.” He was serious.
“Think about it for another day,” he trailed off as he left the room.
The next morning he summoned us to his room. “I have chosen you both to officiate at
the Puja ceremonies for Navtratri. The Divine Mother came to me in my meditation and told me
to do this. And Inder, after the Puja we will begin work on your business. There is only one
thing left. I will need fifty thousand U.S. dollars from you in cash to pay the agent’s fee.”
We were stunned and our minds said NO. But our hearts were not ready to abort the
experience and go home, and so after much pondering we arranged to deliver the cash to the
swami.
The nine days of Puja was a captivating affair. Amongst the guests were politicians,
high-ranking officials, business families, Bollywood producers, actors, poets, and singers.
Everyone except Inder and me had attended this event before and was well versed with all the
rituals.
Each day as we sat for Puja, we were like kittens amongst wolves, surrounded as we were
by forty-two pundits with long, scraggly hair and beards. And we heard repeatedly, “Aren’t you
lucky? You must have really good karma that the Divine Mother has chosen you to officiate the
For nine days we felt transported to a magical world. All fifty-one guest rooms at the
ashram were filled with pundits and yogis from all over India. They were each gifted in their
unique way, especially the Swami’s elder brother, Amritnath, who was not a yogi but seemed to
“Within five years, you will own your own island and plane,” he said to Inder, and went
on to describe other details. It felt like a dream. And just as one meets mythical characters, we
met animated beings with gifts of clairvoyance and intuition beyond belief.
It started slowly. We began to receive messages from Swami’s near and dear that this
man was a fraud and had no intentions of setting up Inder in business. It was a rude awakening
from our dream. With false promises, he had in the past robbed others of large sums of money.
“Leave now before it is too late,” was the advice coming now from his employees and pundits.
They introduced us to a few guests who told their stories of Swami’s false promises. A
few had liquidated all their assets, and were now living in the ashram, hoping each day that the
Swami would live up to his word. However, on one side Inder and I refused to believe it could
happen to us, and on the other we began to push the Swami to set up Inder’s appointment with
We noticed the Swami was beginning to get a bit distant. When we mentioned the
business, he would get defensive, even annoyed. One day he said to me, “Ruby, I hope you can
feel my love. I can fulfill your every desire. I am not like others who will use you. But I must
warn you that Inder is not your match. You are a wise woman, and I need not say more.” After
I was angry and felt terribly violated by his words and told Inder the Swami had started
playing games with us. The next day Inder met with him and expressed his concerns over the
business plan. “Swamiji, I can’t wait any longer. I must get back to Canada. When are we
“Inder,” he said, “I can see you are changing. You doubt me. Ruby must be
brainwashing you. I didn’t want to tell you this earlier but I think she is not genuine; she is
sleeping with other men and no good can come to you in her company. Go back home to Punjab
and I will call you within the week for the business.”
Our drive back was tortuous. We were overtaken by fear and doubt. We waited not one
week but three and still the Swami did not call. When we realized he had changed his cell phone
number, panic hit. It was not just about the money; I simply could not believe this was
happening to me! How could I be cheated, almost robbed! I was angry because I had lost face,
and even though I felt there was a good reason for meeting him, I just didn’t know what it was.
Inder and our friend, Dr. Oberoi (we called him NKO), did not spare me either. “Ruby, I told you
he was a fraud, you were taken in by his power,” he said again and again with regret.
“What kind of an intuitive are you?” demanded Inder angrily. “And those guides of
yours let you be robbed and did nothing to help. I think you should fire them all and give up
And that’s exactly how it felt. We consulted a criminal lawyer and a few other influential
people. They reminded us there was no proof we had given any cash to the swami and suggested
Two months later, there was still no word from Swami. We knew for sure we had lost all
the money. “Inder,” I said one day, “I feel responsible for the loss. I promise to pay it all back
to you.”
“I don’t want the money back from you, Ruby,” he replied. “I want him to return it. But
I felt saddened, hurt and let down. This is when I brought God in to the picture. But
“Swamiji, this is Ruby. I don’t know what you are up to but whatever it is, just stop it.
Return our money now or I promise that you will pay the price for getting tangled up with me.”
I could not believe my own words. I was sure no one, at least not a woman, had ever spoken like
“Please, please calm down,” he said. “I love you. Why would I want to hurt you?”
“I want the money back,” Inder demanded from me, and I from God.
“I even doubt I am meant to work with you,” Inder said to me, and I to God.
“I give you two weeks. If you don’t succeed, I am out and I will never work with you,”
“Not two weeks, I want only nine days,” God said to me, and I to Inder.
This is when I declared war with the Swami. I tried talking to him inwardly but he
refused to budge. Then I knew I would have to go over and above him. This time I did a search
for his masters with hope of working out a deal with them. It took me five days to locate one of
his masters on the inner, who after he heard my case, gave me instructions for a remedy. I did
what he asked, then meditated for three days, after which I went to Inder and said, “Now, call the
That day, the Swami’s secretary put the call through. “Tell Ruby I am not afraid. I know
what she is up to. She is trying to influence me but I am not threatened. And by the way, where
is she?” he asked.
“Swamiji, Ruby is visiting her friend, the law minister’s wife.” Inder purposely threw in
the name to influence him. To me it was part of a miracle that, within those nine days of inner
work, I worked outwardly with a woman whose husband happened to be the law minister.
Unbeknownst to us, the Swami was scheduled to appear in court a few weeks later for a hearing
“Don’t threaten me with names,” he growled. “Come and get your money, and do not
bring Ruby.”
My belief in the inner work was again confirmed. I knew once again that when Soul is in
charge, anything becomes possible. I thanked the Master who helped me, and began our return
The Swami experience disturbed me. I was unable to fully comprehend all the reasons
for our entanglement, but one result was I lost all fear of being hurt. Every astrologer I’d ever
had a reading from had warned me not to trust people when it came to money and love. The
very idea had been crippling for me. I hated not to love and this experience had given me the
There were other gifts from this experience. I realized a needy person is vulnerable and
can fall prey to any temptation. I also realized I needed no protection; no one could take anything
away from me and that deceit and falsehood can bring down the strongest of the strong, while
honesty and purity open the door to paradise, and even God bows his head to you. I remembered
the poet Iqbal’s 13 words to mankind: “Become so strong that even God surrenders and says,
‘Your wish is my command.’” I am sure that the “god-man” will never forget the woman who
challenged and beat him at his own game. I also promised myself not to test my strength this way
again. But playing with the wolves inspired me to go within and extract the strength and
intelligence to play in the big league. “If only there were enough funds to manifest our dream
13
Iqbal, Muslim Poet.
project,” we both thought as we flew over thirty-five thousand miles on our way home to
Canada.
Back in Winnipeg, Inder suggested we set up a new real estate business. His intuition
proved right, and those four years gave us valuable experience in construction, development, and
During these years, I had no urge to do any sessions. I saw very few clients and
surprisingly, thought of little but the real estate business. I was startled when a few friends asked
if I was doing any spiritual work. I said yes, of course. The new business was as spiritual as the
healing work. I realized it is not what I do, it is how I do it that makes it spiritual or not. I was
fully absorbed in this work when in August, 2005 I was asked to help in something out of the
ordinary. This time it was Ma ji, Inder’s grandmother. Life was about to change again.
Chapter Eight
The Wake Up Call
“Education is a means to power, and personal development the ability to hold that power.
However, power without purpose is as meaningless as a cat with two horns.”
One night in early September of 2005, as I lay fast asleep in my home in Winnipeg, I
awoke suddenly to find Ma ji by my side. She was wearing a crisp white outfit and looking
fresher than I had ever seen her. She pulled up a chair by my side and sat right next to me. The
clock on the dresser showed it to be exactly two o’clock in the morning. She was visiting me in
I was shocked to see her because she had made no contact with me for about four years.
The years had passed and now she was over ninety-eight years old. For the past year, she had
been confined to a nursing home and her health was deteriorating rapidly.
Ma ji had led a very full life in business, politics, and service to humanity. She was
known as a supporter of the disadvantaged and had fought for women's rights. In fact, she was
the first East Indian woman in Malaysia to get her driver’s licence. Ma ji had no fears, at least
none that were visible to me. She had tremendous faith in God and had always voiced her truth.
She truly believed God had brought us together for a higher purpose. She believed in me
and had high expectations of me, wanting me to reach great spiritual heights and help others.
However, her expectations had included a lifestyle I could not live and so I disappointed her so
she withdrew from me as quickly as she had embraced me. At first I was angry with her for
abandoning me, but then I realized my love was greater than my hurt. Even though I was not
It was now almost four years since I’d had any direct contact with Ma ji. Knowing she
was in a nursing home a thousand miles away in Edmonton, I was naturally shocked to see her in
my bedroom. She spoke softly, and with no formalities, she came straight to the point.
“I want your help. My body is about to collapse and I still have many things to do. I
need a spiritual form. I need you to help me make the transition from this life to the next.”
I wondered exactly what kind of help she wanted. Without waiting for a reply, she spoke
again as if reading my mind. “I promise that in return, you will get back what you have lost. The
Then both of us became silent, and in the dark of the night we struck a deal that needed
no words. I closed my eyes, reflecting upon what she had said. When I opened them Ma ji was
Waking up Inder, I told him about Ma ji’s visit. He was not surprised, but to me her visit
was unexpected and her request strange. I was sure she would visit me after her death, perhaps
after she had seen the bigger picture, become more objective, and realized our mutual Soul
connection.
I went back to sleep but when I awoke the next morning, I had the distinct feeling that
Ma ji was not simply present in the room but present within me in a whole new way. This was
strange indeed. Somehow, we had become twinned. I began experiencing some of her physical
symptoms and found I could relate to everything in her awareness. At some point during the
night, there must have been transfer or merger of energy. It seemed that while Ma ji was making
the transition from this world to the next, I had become a physical carrier for her.
This process of merging was beyond my comprehension. The closest I’d ever come was
in my work when I would heal a shattered energy field and perspective for a client and then
create a new healthy flow of intelligence and intuition. With their consent and through my
intention, I would enter their energy field, retrieve the needed information, and reconnect them to
their inner core. I communicated through intuition and set up a strong link for them to access the
How did this happen? The best way I can explain it is to say I would enter my client’s
space and then activate the required state of consciousness and level of awareness through my
being. Once within that space, I could override a client’s state of consciousness with my own
and transmit the desired state change – whether at a mental, emotional, or spiritual level - to
them. Soon, the client’s body and mind would mimic the feeling, state, and awareness I had
initiated. Of course, the state I induced was only in accordance to their life purpose. Once that
was manifested, I would exit and it would be just a matter of time before the client would start to
express the new intelligence in a meaningful way. If nothing else, I was able to bring peace and
quiet to troubled and suffering minds. I often said, “I know about others because I know how to
be them.”
I had used a similar process when I helped clients connect with their Soul purpose.
Through intention, I could place myself in any other space. I was able to gain access to an
unlimited field of intelligence where I could decipher a particular Soul’s code and interpret the
history and the chemistry of that Soul. I would then connect with a person’s Soul intelligence
and discern the journey of that Soul, keying into their personal spiritual inclinations along with
that Soul’s intention. I would get to know who they were and what they were here to do. I often
So, aligning and attuning came naturally to me. However, being a spiritual and physical
carrier for someone while they were in transition was well beyond my comfort zone. I had no
conscious experience of it. However, I trusted that Ma ji knew what she was doing when she
approached me. I believed all I needed was the intent to help her and the rest would follow.
This was easier said than done. Following Ma ji’s visit I experienced the chaos,
confusion, and pain of someone who was dying. I was a master of eliminating pain and
suffering, but my experience was merging with people who were living, not with someone who
was dying.
It’s kind of the same, I thought to myself. I did hold the space with my spiritual
awareness while they shifted from one state to another. This was similar, except Maji was also
Ma ji’s dying body was now closing in on me and I felt immense pressure. My own
physical body began to crash and I could do nothing to stop it. Now slowing down rapidly, I
began to feel heavy and numb like a lifeless zombie. I had no energy and felt dense and dark. I
had no appetite and began to lose my equilibrium. I could not lift my head off the pillow or even
move. All I could do was lie flat on my back, be silent, and hold the state while the experience
Ma ji was a thousand miles away on her deathbed, yet as I lay in my home I could see
what she was seeing. I could see the family members and friends in and around the room – those
who had come to seek her blessing and bid her farewell. As well, I could see those in subtle
form who were gathering to receive and welcome her on the other side. I watched as her
brothers and husband waited patiently. There were also light forms I could not recognize. There
was a similarity and yet a huge difference between these substantial and subtle realities.
Here I was hovering between life and death, not mine but Ma ji’s. I could not rush or
control anything. I was not able to move out of my space and be elsewhere. Neither was I able
to move Ma ji out of my space. It seemed we were both suspended in time, chained to each other
until together we could make the transition from one dimension to another. I had no choice but
to surrender and experience a conscious death as it came. Little did I realize that Ma ji, though
The next morning, my lack of focus and coordination made it impossible for me to rise
from the bed. So I just lay there, accepting what was happening and trying to stay out of the
way. But by evening it was getting more difficult and I was really struggling.
That night Inder got a call informing him his grandmother’s condition had worsened and
he was needed. He grabbed the first available flight and I was left alone to deal with whatever
was coming. Strangely, I was not scared, just concerned for both Ma ji and myself. I remained
in bed and early the next morning I had a vision, this time through my own eyes, not Ma ji’s. Ma
ji was being helped into a boat. Two young men, one of whom wore a police uniform, supported
her as she stepped into the boat. I guessed the two men to be her brothers.
I understood that Ma ji was about to depart from this life. I called Inder and he
confirmed that Ma ji’s two favourite brothers had passed away a long ago and one of them had
been a policeman. Also that Ma ji had often said they would come for her when it was her time
to cross over.
Now Ma ji began giving me specific instructions she wanted passed on to the family,
designed to make her exit smooth and easy. She did not want to be touched or spoken to. She
wanted no one to cry. She wanted everyone to remain peaceful and quiet. “No parties, no
drinking alcohol,” she said. And most importantly, the family must take turns praying and
reading from spiritual texts for the next twenty-four hours, without interruption. By doing so,
they would create the qualitative energy support Ma ji needed to make her transition.
The family received the information and soon after the prayers were begun, Ma ji became
silent and peaceful. At a certain point she stopped responding and that evening, when no one
was near, she took her last breath and embraced death.
A few hours before her exit, I had lost control over my bodily sensations. While I
trembled anxiously, intense waves of vibration shook my every cell. Depleted, I just lay in bed.
My breathing became shallow and, despite being in a well lit room, I began falling into darkness.
I could no longer see or think. Then my connection to Ma ji suddenly dissolved and I felt
hopelessly lost.
For the first four or five hours after her death these sensations continued. Ma ji had
moved on but I remained on this side, exhausted and distressed. Only by next morning did my
Although a bit puzzled as to how I had been of service to Ma ji, I felt good to have done
everything in my capacity to help her. Confident that our personal commitment to each other
had been gracefully completed, I felt wonderfully fulfilled. I had kept my promise; now it was
her turn. ‘Ruby, I will be back to help you.’ Her words rang in my being.
“I walked through the valley of death only to find that on either side was life alive.”
Secretly, I was excited and hoped for her quick return so she could fulfill her promise.
But not wanting to raise my expectations too high, I decided not to think about it and turned my
focus back to my everyday life. Inder returned home and several days passed uneventfully.
However, on the fourteenth day, at Inder’s insistence I agreed to look for Ma ji. I simply
thought of her and put out the intention for her to call us. It did not take very long for her to
Ma ji looked absolutely different. Head held high, she stood straight, youthful and full of
vigour. There was no sign of stress on her bright and glowing face.
Ma ji admitted she did not yet have all the dots connected, but she recounted her
experience of dying and death. She had assumed her death would be easy because of her strong
spiritual connection. Instead, she had found it hard to separate from her family. She had not
expected the bodily pain or the mental anguish. Unable to see her guides, she had panicked.
That’s when she thought of me, and never for a split second did she doubt my spiritual
strength which would help carry her over the threshold. She wanted to do this without any loss
of conscious memory, and for this she needed a strong, unpolluted, unconditioned spiritual
carrier. She felt she needed a physical ally for the work she still needed to do, and wanted to
transfer to another body of intelligence before her body weakened and disintegrated.
Ma ji admitted she was nervous before coming to see me, but relieved after we
connected. Like me, she was not fully aware of how the attuning would take place but she was
not concerned about it. Even though her frail body was giving way and her organs were shutting
down, she felt peaceful and strong in my presence and that helped her relax. This was the point
As I listened to Ma ji describing her experience, I knew exactly what she was talking
about. She said for a long time she was quiet and there was no movement. She felt safe and
knew she would be taken care of, but she had still not seen her guides. She did not know
whether to wait and rest or to make a move and maybe pray. How does one act in the face of
death?
It was not that she feared death, but not knowing when and how it would happen was
wearing her down. She began thinking about her future. What would she do if she had another
chance, another opportunity at life? What was next? No sooner had the thought occurred when
she began seeing images of different possibilities. She quickly selected something close to her
But even in that semi-conscious state, she realized that first she needed to open her heart
and step into a bigger picture. Ma ji admitted she could have done a lot more if she had been
more open and accepting. Her religious teachings had given her some awareness but they were
culturally conditioned. Her beliefs about how people should act had closed her heart and capped
her potential. She had fallen short. I was surprised she had been able to see a bigger picture so
These new realizations must have triggered something deeper and brought forth clarity
because soon after, she told me, the room filled with light and she could sense movement and
presence. She then felt herself lifting, and then watching from above as her sickly body drew its
last few breaths. There was commotion in the room, a few nurses running around, someone
making calls to her family. It was like walking out of one dream she said, into another.
Her death was not instantaneous, like a plug being pulled. It took time. As her
awareness shifted away from her body, the pressure and burden of her physical body released.
The light created an anesthetic effect, enabling her to move into a deep presence. Then she lost
awareness. Ma ji could not tell me what happened after that; she called it the unconscious state.
When she regained consciousness, her guides were beside her. As were others - her husband,
brothers and friends, no longer in physical form. By this time, her perception had changed and
she could not relate to anyone at a deep level. She quickly wrapped up the meeting by wishing
everyone the best on their journey and suggesting they move on and to work towards their
I was surprised. I was used to Ma ji being bossy and overbearing, and imposing her truth
upon others. But that physical personality was gone. Now she was more self-focused. This was
Ma ji kept repeating that her memory was intact. At first, I did not understand what she
meant but she persisted. The process of death she explained, had brought back her memory. She
could remember even the tiniest details of her life with acute awareness. Additionally, she was
able to connect her experiences, realize her strengths and weak-nesses, and see her purpose in
Ma ji was able to connect with spiritual intelligence through her religion and her guides.
But because she had lived with minimal awareness, she could not download that intelligence to a
level where she was conscious of her purpose as Soul. The promises she had made to herself as
Soul could not be lived the way she had originally intended.
Soon after she crossed over, Ma ji’s guides began helping her choose a path through
which she could become more open and aware. Together they designed the details of her work
as she wanted to get started without losing another moment. I also noticed her desire was still
regimented but far more relaxed. Her path now clear, she was ready one more time.
Ma ji left me with lots to ponder over. Even so, nothing of what she shared was beyond
my knowledge. I had not consciously studied spiritual science but I knew the ways of spirit.
As promised, Ma ji came back with more, but there was no real pattern. At times she
would reveal a great deal in one sitting. Other times she would come for a flying visit, drop a
split-second vision, and then disappear. I did not quite know what to make of everything she
told me but I did find myself looking forward to her visits every night.. There was a childlike
I usually shared the information with Inder and his sister who were always eager for the
fascinating information. Even though the messages made sense, I did not take them too
seriously. Sometimes I wondered if this was real or just another deception but it did not seem to
matter. Illusion was part of the greater reality; the play must go on. With this attitude, I
Then one day, Ma ji delivered a personal message for each member of her family and
told me to pass it on to them with no alterations. I expressed my concern. Tainted as they were
by ill feelings towards me, why would her family members trust the messenger or the message?
She assured me she would appear and inform one of them in their dream, one whom everyone
trusted and who could confirm the authenticity of her messages. On her word, that weekend I
A few nights later, Ma ji appeared in Pretty’s dream. I knew Pretty, who was a good
friend of the family, and she unfailingly delivered the message to the rest. The family was
touched at many levels and so was I. As for the messages, I noticed some were long and
detailed, especially for those on a life path similar to hers. For all others, the messages were
short and sweet. The words she used were direct, thought-provoking, and inspiring; they led to
One day Ma ji informed me she would not be available for some time. She was going to
attend some sort of school, to meet with many masters of various traditions whose knowledge
was part of the manifest world. Through them she would access a field of subtle intelligence that
would enhance the knowledge to best serve her Soul’s purpose. She said she had spent many
years in organized religion and was now going to step outside the box and develop her genius.
With strength and clarity, she committed to help others do the same. True religion, she said, was
to align all dimensions and deliver our unique and real genius.
She talked about how being unique keeps one close to their Source. This is when we can
create the holistic dynamics to serve the larger purpose. Anything short of this will divide and
fragment our relationship to the self and each other. Acceptance and tolerance will not be
and potential.
There was no judgment and I noticed Ma ji was open. Realizing I had knowledge but
lacked understanding, I asked if I could accompany her to these schools of understanding. She
did not think it was my purpose or need to do so. “You are good the way you are.” She smiled
Ma ji kept her word. She told me she spent time with masters and teachers who practiced
said, “and personal development brings forth the ability to hold that power. However, power
“I have learned the process of self-inquiry,” she said. “This process is fundamental in
regaining lost power. Self-inquiry awakens the intellect and put together with subtle intuition,
can give rise to a spontaneous spiritual breakthrough. We can gauge our level of intelligence by
the questions we ask. The question arises with the answer even though we are not able to
perceive the answer first. This is a way for inner awareness to become externalized. Both
question and answer together serve as a tool in developing conscious awareness. On the other
hand, questions asked by and of others serve only to stimulate our intellect; they do not awaken
Ma ji talked a great deal about living “out of a hole” or from conditioned responses. “We
see little, we feel little, and we do little,” she said. “Our little world becomes “be-little-ing” if
not expanded. We cannot relate to anything beyond our confined space. This smallness is a
direct result of not living up to our potential; it constitutes living out of a hole instead of a
whole.”
“We adopt beliefs unconsciously and out of ignorance, and follow the beliefs we are
given, no questions asked,” she said. “We are taught methodically and we teach the same way.
We repeat, we teach, and we make others believe us; we remain unconscious and spread
unawareness. Few of us question the perspective we are given. We seem to grow in the same
direction and this gives us a lopsided understanding of the universe and of ourselves. In other
“ Have you ever seen the blue in the water or the sky?” she asked. I was excited by her
new approach and what she was sharing. That night I went to sleep looking for the blue.
There was much more. One day, Ma ji even talked about sexuality as a means to reach
spiritual heights. “Sex with awareness can take us to the top, we are hardwired to do so,” she
said, referring to Tantra with which I was familiar. “The more knowledge we have of this
I could not help thinking how she had condemned this path while in physical form. She
thought it was evil and should not be discussed. In her old belief system, praying, service, and
humility took you to the top; no other way was acceptable. She was now seeing things she had
considered evil during her life with new eyes. I realized it was all about greater openness and
awareness.
“All teachings and world religions point to the truth,” she said. “But they are simply
pointers, not truth itself. One still needs to walk the distance to experience the truth. Even then,
our truth is always partial.” These words confirmed and validated what I had learned through
personal experience.
She described the role of spiritual masters, teachers, saints, guides, and angels. I was
“Angels are different from ancestral spirits or guides,” she reported. “They are helpers
created to assist those in need. Time bound, they appear and disappear. They don’t have to know
us or our life path to help in times of disaster, trouble, and distress. Angels help us at crossroads
and shed light on our blind spots. They cause things to happen that seem like miracles because
There was too much to absorb. All I could say was, “Wow! Really? Oh no, ah yes, and
oops!” I was like the flute; the information was simply passing through me. At first, I did not
realize how this information was affecting me; it was too subtle to be noticed. But then I noticed
some changes. I felt more confident and clear, a bit lighter and brighter. I started to become
more aware and noticed a big difference in my attitude and way of living. It was like someone
had switched on the headlights, and I could see and understand a lot more. Every night I went to
bed with anticipation, waiting for Ma ji to appear. And every day I observed more changes
within myself. I felt as light as a butterfly; my passion was growing wings right before my eyes.
This went on until early October, when she disappeared for a week or so. She returned
with a twinkle in her eye as if she had found a missing treasure. I was eager to listen.
“We each have a personal link to connect with the greater field of intelligence,” she said.
“In addition, each of us has four personal guides who act as connectors to the greater field of
intelligence. However, if and when our personal link gets clogged and we are unable to access
the intelligence that serves our creativity, we can call upon these guides to help us. They are in
waiting and will not interfere, but when called upon will create the circumstances for a
breakthrough.”
She went on to explain more, but I was unable to comprehend what she was describing.
Even so, I was thrilled to know about the guides. I had connected with guides and angelic realms
before and knew the power of asking but this time it felt different. I told her I would give it a try.
“There’s more, “she said. “Do you want to be fully conscious of your life purpose? Do
“Meditate for forty-one days, for forty-one minutes each day, and you will burst open the
lock to greater awareness; you will see everything,” she promised. “Just follow the instructions I
give you,” Ma ji whispered, as though she were sharing a secret. “They are not from me but
somehow I got wind of them. You can try it out and see what happens.”
“Wow! It’s too good to be true,” I exclaimed. Of course, I had been given many miracle
techniques in the past. I had tried them, passed them on, and then discarded them. But I still had
faith that one day I would discover the biggest miracle technique of all. I had waited long at the
threshold of the unknown, waiting for something to happen. I had tried anything I was offered
just in case it was really the big thing. I did not quite know what I was looking for, but I knew I
was waiting for something bigger than the truth of science and the reality of the manifest world.
Deeper than scriptural teachings and spiritual knowledge. Greater than love and the meaning of
life. This was the recipe I was looking to discover. Could Ma ji’s technique bring me closer to
my heart’s desire?
“What if I’m crazy and this is all in my head?” I thought as I lay my head on the pillow.
“No, you are not crazy,” I heard a voice whisper from somewhere deep within.
I decided to try Ma ji’s recipe even though I did not know what I wanted or whether my
wants and needs were spiritual, mental, social, or simply egocentric. It didn’t matter; I was
That night I went to sleep with both eyes open, unwilling to miss anything. I dreamt of
the many wonders of the world including the pyramids and the Taj Mahal. And I had a vision.
In the vision, a bright light appeared directly in front of me. It was so bright it blinded me and I
could not see where I was going. Suddenly, I realized I was facing the wrong way; the light
should be behind me, not in front. So I turned around and let the light shine from behind to
guide me. Now I could see the path ahead. This created a flow I had not experienced earlier.
“What now?” I wondered. Just then I remembered Ma ji ’s last words, “The guides are
It was a chilly morning, nevertheless I awoke eager and bright-eyed. Today was the big
day; I was ready to make my first contact with the four guides. I wanted proof of their existence.
If Ma ji’s information was correct, this would be no less than another miracle.
But what was I going to ask these guides? I was bombarded by so many desires and
needs I could not decide which one should come first. On top of that, I began to wonder if this
Somehow I managed to clear my mind and concentrate on what I truly wanted. Rather
than asking for something petty or mundane, I decided to ask for something that would give me
what I needed most. What was the point of catching a small fish if I could get my hands on a
My request needed to be clear so the guides would understand it. At the same time, I
hoped they would not restrict themselves to my limited request, but through insight would give
me much more. As the day progressed, so did my greed and I became more confused. For me,
asking for something was not easy unless I was praying. I resolved this problem by deciding to
be present and spontaneous. Once in the company of the guides, I would know what to ask.
My memory took me back to1992 when I sought that first big breakthrough. I had made
it happen then, but now, thirteen years later I yearned for something more. Even though I felt
complete and fulfilled at one level, there was a lingering desire for greater wealth and the
Initially, I had fallen blindly into a life that was magical and full and kept me occupied
for many years. But over the years, I had become complacent and my prayer and meditation
practice had fallen away. At best, I coped with my shortcomings; at worst, I ignored them. Even
though my Soul work with others had progressed well and I had helped many people, within
Part of my suffering stemmed from knowing I had not reached my potential. I longed to
come into personal fullness, to be strong and healthy and live my calling. I wanted to dig deeper,
to know myself as Soul, my roots and my history. I felt the suffering would end if I lived out all
the Soul Promises I had made. But part of me feared I might not remember my Soul Promise.
The fact was I had been feeling a little depressed when Ma ji appeared and presented me
with a new way of connecting with a greater intelligence. I could play with Ma ji’s messages but
not become too involved. But I had no idea really that I was about to hit the bull’s eye. That I
would enter a subtle realm enabling me to identify myself as a Soul with a history. With a sense
of intrigue, playfulness, and sensibility, I willfully swung open the door and invited the guides
Ma ji’s instructions had been very clear and specific. “Don’t waste time personalizing
the relationship with the guides,” she had instructed. “These guides are not personal beings.
They are a form of intelligence that appears as light forms or pillars. You don’t need to know
them, or even see them; just know they exist. Your connection will be instantaneous and will
trigger the flow of intelligence and expansive awareness. If you just meditate for forty-one
minutes each day, you will get whatever you want. All you have to do is ask.”
Frankly, I was more interested in results than in the process. I began connecting by
visualizing myself sitting in the centre of four light pillars, two ahead and two behind. At first, I
was going to extend an invitation to the guides. I wanted their help in gathering information
about myself as Soul, connecting to my Soul purpose, and developing Soul awareness. But this
did not happen. As soon as I sat down I could feel a presence, as if someone was waiting for my
arrival. The light from the pillars penetrated me, and I felt compelled to speak spontaneously out
loud.
“I am fearful, angry, hurt, and lonely,” I began. “I still suffer with doubts. I have
followed my inner guidance and shared everything I could. I have no more to offer to others. I
don’t know what’s next, but I do know I cannot continue until I receive more.”
And then I began weeping – pouring out my heart. I did not think there was anyone
listening, but it felt good to empty myself. After a while, I fell into a deep and silent presence,
and stopped thinking. There was no movement except that of my tears. Much later, I finally
opened my eyes. When I returned to my bed to sleep, it was with a new feeling of lightness and
joy.
The next morning I awoke feeling calmer than usual, and went about my business with a
new ease. The euphoria and peace from the previous night remained with me all day. I waited
eagerly for the night, to connect again with the guides. First I would remain silent and let the
mind chatter pass. Then I would visualize the light forms, and speak with an open heart. There
was nothing to ask for; all I wanted was to bathe and soak in the timeless presence. The stillness
By the fourth day, I realized I was a bit removed from everyone. I was participating but
not engaging. I could see myself speak, talk, and hear. Even though I had experienced this state
before, there was a greater awareness this time. My pleasure was more internal than external. I
I soon realized that whenever I planned to ask for something in advance, I was unable to
follow through. Instead, I spontaneously blurted out something else. I realized that what my
mind wanted and what I truly needed were two different things.
Desires are usually externally driven with uncertainty and confusion while the inner
being craves something else to awaken. I also realized the act of asking verbally was solely for
my benefit, making me aware of my mind. This increased awareness brought me more clarity
and confidence.
As I perfected the meditation, I learned to silence the mind and listen to the inner voice.
A few moments into the meditation, I would speak out with clarity and precision. What came
through was amazing! The effects of the meditation would last all day. The process was
changing my way of thinking and I was starting to live in this new way of thinking. I realized I
was making different choices. I was stronger, fuller, and closer to living my dream life when
It was another ten days or so before I noticed how the inner force was shifting my
physical. One day as I sat in meditation, my head began rotating in a circular motion as if to
create a better flow. After the rotation stopped I was unable to move my head for a long time.
So I just sat there in full surrender so as not to interfere with the process. I could feel different
vibrations and later, I noticed my neck was stronger and my mind was more clear and alert.
and tapped different parts of my body. Instantly I felt more energy, clarity, and vitality. I was
also guided to breathe in a certain way. At the beginning of each meditation, I would breathe
I realized the forty-one minutes Ma ji had prescribed for me was the exact amount of time
I needed to connect with a greater intelligence, resolve things, and rejuvenate my mind and body.
It was as if the meditation practice had connected me to a mega computer, a direct source of
energy and intelligence. I continued to receive input even when not meditating.
I decided to share the meditation with my friends and a few clients. I explained the
technique and let them try it out. Almost all of them experienced some breakthrough. It was
The meditations generated an energy flow that was intoxicating and addictive. I was in
deep presence, yet functioning at an optimal level. But there was more to come.
1. Visualize yourself sitting in the centre of four light pillars, two ahead and two behind.
3. Your connection will be instantaneous and will trigger the flow of intelligence.
For me it was forty-one days, but for others it was twenty-one days. Try it out – see what
Chapter Nine
Five Visions of Past Lives
“I realized the process of awakening is not to learn more, but to remember more.”
One day as I settled down to meditate, I began to see images. Suddenly, I stepped into a
full-blown vision. Within seconds my stomach was tied in knots, and I felt overwhelmed with
panic unlike anything I had ever known. I had seen hundreds of visions for others but rarely one
for myself. I was not only seeing the vision, I was experiencing it as well. I realized I was
I find myself in a village in rural India around the late 1800s. A woman in her early
thirties is looking directly at me. Her big brown eyes lock onto mine and I can feel her inside
The woman is about to be hanged in an open well by at least twenty men who stand
around her. There’s a rope around her neck which is yet to be pulled. Down inside the well lie
the corpses of other women who have met a similar fate. I want to see more but I am frightened
and in shock.
I understand she is a social worker, who has been trying to stop the Hindu practice of
Sati, whereby a widow is burnt alive on her dead husband’s funeral pyre. The reasons for this
barbaric practice are social, financial, and cultural, and based in mythology and superstition.
There are many theories about its origins. Society declines the burden of a widow. Shunned as
bad luck, such a woman loses her place in the family and society. Dying with her husband is
considered the woman’s way of honouring and respecting him. As much as the widow herself
steps into the funeral pyre, but actually this decision is forced upon her by the elders.
The woman’s eyes and mine are locked. I notice her rich brown skin and her long dark
hair rolled in a bun. Her slim tight body is wrapped in a white cotton sari. The woman is about
to lose her life but there is no fear or anger within her. She is focussed and determined.
I am aware that she came to educate the villagers and help bring social reforms. But
charged with inciting mind and making trouble, her house was burnt and she was ordered to
I feel nauseated and want to leave the scene. But the fire in the woman’s eyes holds me
firmly and forces me to witness and experience what is about to come. At first, I am angry, hurt,
and distressed. I want to punish the assailants. But then I connect with the message she is
conveying to me. She is compelling me to go beyond the anger and connect with something
I have always felt the need to become a powerful instrument of transformation for myself
and others. In this life, my personal struggle has always been to combat unhealthy internal and
external influences, to rise above cultural and social conditioning, and to connect with my
spiritual intelligence. I deeply resent rituals based on superstition and have always been repulsed
by situations where I was forced to follow a way that went against my inner core, or where I did
In my early years, I lacked the confidence and strength to speak my mind. Instead, I
suffered by cocooning myself in anger and resentment. I spent many years fighting the system
and traditional ways of thinking. In the process, I forgot that rather than depleting energy, I
could transcend it, work at a higher level, and get far better results.
As I watched the woman die, she passed the torch of light and awareness to me. I could
feel the transfer of the promise and the strength needed to fulfill it. The physical facts of the
woman’s life were unimportant - it was the spiritual connection of purpose I had needed. I felt a
new freedom in knowing I was strong enough to face my challenges; I had done it before and I
could do it again.
The vision of the hanged woman started to open up old wounds, but then I stopped and
suddenly I became aware of the choices I had made in this life. Incarnating as a woman, the
fourth daughter, non acceptance of a conditioned culture, my need to grow from within, my
desire to be a powerful voice and force and more. In seconds my entire life flashed in me and I
could make sense of my inner psychology and see how it was influencing me to think and act in
ways befitting my purpose. I was inspired in new ways, all over again.
This extraordinary vision was the first of many insights into my Soul history. It made me
more determined than ever to awaken my intelligence through direct experience and Soul
awareness. I realized the process of awakening is not to learn more but to remember more. I
loved this new awareness and it gave me the courage to explore myself from a Soul perspective.
I appreciated the workings of the Soul even more, and began to understand the true meaning of
reincarnation. My mind could only see the small picture, but as Soul I had access to the whole
I had always craved freedom and now I could feel true spiritual freedom within my reach.
It was not freedom from things, people, or situations, but rather freedom from a way of thinking
The image of a bird trying to escape from a cage came to me. She kept flapping her
wings to get away. In her struggle, she failed to see that the cage door was already open. She
had always been free; she just did not know it.
Each succeeding vision was loaded with multiple meanings. The deeper I went, the more
meaningful they became. They brought clarity, gave me direction and guidance and became a
most effective tool for self-realization. It is possible I could have seen them in a dream but
I was on a roll. Ma ji’s information about the Soul guides was real; the visions
and meditations proved it beyond doubt. The Soul meditations were a vehicle and I was going
somewhere. The destination was not important; the journey itself was now the big thrill.
The nights were intoxicating. I enjoyed the adrenaline surge coursing through my body.
I reveled in the field of orgasmic potentiality, making love to all possibilities. The intention or
the asking was the foreplay. It made my juices flow. Not wanting to disturb the ecstatic mating
of consciousness and energy, I would sometimes purposely postpone asking for anything. Just to
be present in the field was enough. I wanted to tickle every chord in me and play out the music.
The deeper I sank into the timeless presence, the more addictive it became. Within
seconds of feeling the presence, my crown chakra would open and I would enter an infinite sea
of spaciousness. By resting in this space, I could separate myself from emotional and mental
preoccupations, creating a freedom to enjoy meditating without any attachment. It was like
taking a vacation from self-concern. The silence that pervaded this space was sometimes so
great that I could hear my body functioning and feel the subtle space between each cell. It was
eerie.
It had been a few days since my last vision. I wanted to know more about my Soul
history and spiritual roots and anticipated another vision. I did not have to wait long to see
This time it was through a Japanese dancer. I am in Japan and the picture of the woman
sitting on the porch of a small wooden house is too perfect to be real. Serene and quiet, she is
looking out at the green valley below. With eyes half closed, as if in meditation, she seems to be
part of the most beautiful landscape I have ever seen. I guess her to be in her late sixties.
I am awe struck by her beauty and hooked by her silent presence. As I go deep into her
inner being, she begins to feel familiar. I realize she is me in a past life. Within seconds, I am
flowing in her energy. It is like taking a plunge into a river of silence. I know this silence will
reveal the information I am looking for. I want to know her story, so I put the vision in reverse
It becomes clear the woman was a famous geisha dancer in her early years. I watch her
The geisha has lived alone for most of her life. I am taken aback by her lack of need.
She seems to be stress-free, full, and content. I wonder if she has ever had a thought and this
As the vision unfolds, I see her in heavy make-up and a beautiful white, red, and gold
kimono. On a stage decorated with lanterns and red and blue silk banners, she gives a solo
performance.
Her eyes, noticeably soft yet fiery, are inviting, and the music soft. As she dances, she is
mesmerizing, her arms moving effortlessly in slow intentional moves. Her steps are small and
precise; her moves are calculated yet free. She moves her body gracefully, like a serpent. Each
part of her moves in a separate yet synchronized way. She seems to be taunting and teasing the
elements with her natural moves. I can tell as I experience her that every move has been
structured, planned and rehearsed, yet she is flowing with ease and spontaneity.
This geisha loves her work, and although she performs for an audience, she dances first
for her herself. She surrenders to everything outside and inside. Elemental nature guides her,
providing the natural flow that makes her dance a fluid work of art, and giving her the grace to
be both the dance and the dancer. Her intention builds the foundation and purpose; her surrender
creates the spontaneous flow. This is when the dancer becomes an artist and the dance becomes
an artwork.
The vision returns to the porch. This time I sit down to experience the serenity and
detachment of that space. I look up at the full moon and night sky laden with tiny stars. I sit for
a long time until I am wrapped in the inky darkness and drift into the silent space.
When I awoke from this vision, I was possessed by the geisha’s dance, wondering what
made it so magical and heavenly. The answer came instantly. It was not the geisha who
performed the dance I witnessed; it was Soul completing the final dance.
My Soul-self had spoken. I was in touch. Light flashed from within and sparks flew out
“You already have,” I heard the whisper from within. “It is the geisha’s last dance that
has brought you here and now.” Then there was silence. I began to weep but stopped my tears
The vision hit my heart centre. I had always felt lonely and isolated. But as I touched the
geisha’s experience, I became filled with the juicy nectar of love and beauty. The geisha
awakened the memory of peace and ease. I was in the flow and now I had the switch, the
I also became aware that the Soul journey is always solo. Once again, I realized my
memory was the treasure chest where the jewels of my Soul history were stored. I could, in any
moment, open the chest and release their richness. I had a brand new appreciation for
remembering.
My realizations were quiet, subtle, and gentle - whispers more than loud announcements.
Far more than just visions, these were vehicles of transformation. What I made of them was
entirely up to me. Except for Inder and a few friends, I mostly kept them private, like a woman
secretly in love. I loved the night, the dark, the unknown, the unpredictability, and the
unconscious. They offered me the space to be part of any vision and any experience.
“Write them down or you will forget them,” my friends suggested. But at this point I
decided to just enjoy them. The source of the visions was not important to me, neither was their
sequence. I only cared that they were cleaning the mirror of my mind and giving me new insight
about my nature as Soul. If these visions have a future, let them find it, I thought.
It was now mid-November of 2005, and my new lightness made me realize how heavy
and burdened I must have been. Unresolved issues weigh heavily, I thought. Part of me was
shedding; slowly and steadily, another mask was falling off. I could feel a new identity being
established. Now I wanted to be physically healthy and lose the extra weight I was carrying. I
wanted my body to match the new lightness of my mind. I wanted to do things I had not done
before and felt as though I was getting ready for something. But I did not know what that
I did not expect more visions. I was still meditating, but despite this, I was soon restless
again. My mind was active again, like a curious puppy wanting to chew on every idea that came
up. I noticed I was losing interest in concentrating or meditating for a full forty-one minutes.
Maybe this is the end, I thought. But soon after that I had three more visions, one right after the
other.
Unlike the previous visions, I connected instantly to what I was seeing. There was not
the slightest separation between myself and the individuals in my visions. The familiar
environments and images comforted my heart. The information unfolded rapidly each time and I
had the ability to live the entire experience while also witnessing it.
I see a Korean male in his early forties, a master in the martial arts and one of the most
skilled marksmen of his time. I see him begin practice at a very young age. He lives alone near
a hilly valley in a secluded part of a village. Not close to many people, he enjoys his time alone
His vibrations are unbelievable, and I realize quickly he is me in a past life. Strong as
metal and fluid as water, he is straight but flexible. Vigilant and agile like a tai chi master, he
Surges of energy and sparks shoot up my spine; this has never happened to me before. I
cannot contain the energy sitting down, so I rise and walkabout my living room to enjoy the full
body experience. I feel his posture. Tall and sturdy, my broad shoulders are strong enough to
The man’s chest houses the cleanest and clearest heart I have ever seen. This is the first
body I have experienced that is so richly put together. I am really enjoying his mind and muscle
power. He knows exactly what he is doing. I have no doubt that he has the most perfectly
His communication with me is immediate, direct, and without emotion or sentiment. The
marksman says he knows his purpose and has mastered his life accordingly. He treasures his
mind and body as they are the sacred vehicle to fulfill his purpose. He lives his purpose with
clarity and a strong sense of pride. He feeds his spirit with awareness. He practices target
shooting, meditation, and bodywork to develop his spiritual potential. His work is an extension
of himself and his aloofness serves his purpose well. The qualities that distinguish him are
discipline, structure, and a sense of pride. He sets high standards for himself and works hard to
The marksman is essentially a hired killer. He is much sought after and can demand a
high fee to match the high standard of his work. No one bargains with him. This is an old issue
awareness and healing were self discovered, I was not trained in any particular system, my skill
problems and deep-rooted issues. I needed a lot of energy to explore the multiple dimensions to
retrieve information and history on each client. There were times when I became trapped in the
energy field of a client and lost my own sense of grounding. My success depended upon
maintaining my own spiritual connection and force, for this I needed good physical and spiritual
health myself. How could I determine a monetary value for all this?
I listened eagerly for the marksman’s perspective. The issue was very simple for him.
He had a special skill and was well-trained. His fee was in line with his professional ability and
not any external factors. His work and his fee were a reflection of his self-worth.
In a flash, I reflected upon my real problem- Even though I had always known what I was
meant to do, I had not made conscious commitment to living my purpose. Rather, I thought the
Divine intelligence was responsible for the spiritual consulting work I did. Subsequently, I felt
unworthy of this spiritual work; I could not feel the same abundance and enjoyment within
I had not realized that I was to use my special gifts with responsibility. Part of this
responsibility was to keep my spiritual link clear and clean so I could deliver my work properly.
This would have meant a lifestyle change, one which I was not ready to adopt. I needed a proper
discipline and structure. In fact, I felt burdened by the mere thought of discipline and personal
I remembered neither making a Soul Promise of my own free will, nor the gracious
support I was given by the Divine order. Rather than being humbled, I felt I was doing the
Divine intelligence a favour by working in the spiritual field. I never understood that it was I
unworthiness and my reluctance to charge the appropriate fee for my work. I had felt guilty
about taking money from others even though I added so much value to their lives.
While the vision had a powerful effect, it was the awareness of the Soul-self rapidly
And then it struck me. My awakening in 1992 was instant, but the knowledge and special
gifts I had received were not new. I had spent many lifetimes practicing and developing the skills
that made me the person I was today. My gift was the result of all the hard work and lessons
Now that I understood the meaning of a Soul-purposed life, I felt ready for a new start.
The image of a spiritual warrior flashed through my mind. I had lacked structure and discipline,
and had not perfected my physical body to the level of my spiritual calling. I realized that while I
knew how to empower others, I did not become conscious of my own power. I also realized the
spiritual warrior would keep coming back until I had accomplished my purpose and every cell of
The spiritual fire was burning in me; I felt ignited and charged. Old perspectives and
values melted into the ground. My body felt hot like a volcano. I rested my head on the pillow
and let the lava flow downward, finding its own pathways. Within fifteen minutes I had another
vision.
“It is the story, more than the medicine, which made the storyteller a powerful healer.”
I see an old man living in the hills in northern China. In his nineties, he limps with the
aid of a wooden cane, because of a problem with his right hip. His tiny, warped, wooden shed-
like dwelling is surrounded by huge trees. It is cold and dark and the only light is from the sun
or the fire he builds. His only companions are the birds and the big cats that prowl through the
hills by day and lay around the shed at night. He has a special relationship to herbs and plants.
He knows about their medicinal and healing properties and uses them to create healing
medicines.
The old man is attuned to the elements. His father taught him to effectively communicate
and work in synchronicity with them, so he grows his herbs, flowers, and other plants in
alignment with the time and season. He knows that the position of the sun and the moon
produces the right vibration within the plants and increases their healing power. His lifestyle too
is lived in accordance to the laws and cycles of nature. He rises before the sun and retires before
sunset. By respecting nature and the elements, he maintains the quality of his life and his work.
The old man is a well-known healer. He dries the herbs, special leaves, and flowers in
the pure light of the sun. Some are cooked and made into a paste which he stores in small tin
jars. These medicines mature in two to three weeks. His special tea made from wild flowers has
The villagers welcome him with open arms. They are comforted by his presence and
pour out their hearts. His coming is considered auspicious, as no evil or illness can be where he
is. He is also known as a storyteller and there is a story with every medicine. Perhaps it is the
story, more than the medicine, which brings about the healing.
I am surprised by the old man’s energy and stamina. He is slow but works continuously
from sunrise to sunset. Despite the problem with his hip, he walks several miles a day. I
consider my own hip struggle and wish I had his stamina and commitment.
I can also feel his calm connectedness with everything. Suddenly I am aligned with him
The fresh air of the hills is intoxicating. I can touch the lush green trees and shrubbery
and feel them between my fingers. The scent of wild flowers fills my nostrils. The sounds of the
running waterfalls and the crackling of the dry fallen leaves under my feet give me company. I
look for the singing birds, I wonder how my friends, the big cats, are doing. The sun is about to
go down and soon the moon will rise. I wait for the night sky to turn deep blue and for the stars
to twinkle.
I sit down on a big rock in front of the shed and begin to cry. I do not know whether it is
separation or union that brings this painful pleasure. My tears are uncontrollable now but the
louder I howl, the more connected I feel. It takes me awhile to settle down, and only then do I
remember to go looking for the jewels of this experience, the memories that will help me
How little conflict I feel in the old man’s body and environment. I am intimately
connected with everything. There is nowhere that is not home. The plants and flowers serve
their purpose as much as I serve mine. My special ability to communicate with plants, animals,
and all of the elements is at its peak. Nature’s intelligence is totally transparent and accessible to
me.
The old man and I shared many similarities. The stories I told my clients and that brought
extraordinary results had included birds, animals, trees, and flowers and all of nature. As simple
I too knew about the chemistry of visualizations, although not consciously. The exact
visual details I gave my clients were designed to suit their personal chemistry and to stimulate
healing. For example, I might ask a client to visualize the light of the sun at nine o’clock in the
morning instead of at noon or four o’clock in the afternoon. These visualizations were season
specific too. They worked their magic just like specially created potions. Somehow, I had
known that this magic was not new to me, that I had used it before. I also knew that when we are
in attunement with the sun and moon, we can channel high amounts of quality energy.
The old storyteller boosted my energy and awareness; I had a new appreciation for what I
knew. The old man’s no mind existence was contagious. I could feel the silence descend upon
I stand facing the sun. The sun is staring back at me. Its light is falling upon me and is
now entering me. Light trickles everywhere inside me, touching every cell. As it moves through
each cell of my being, I feel a tickling and pinching. Something is opening; the doors and
shutters within me are flying open. As the light touches my heart, I feel full and tears well up in
my eyes. The light moves downward and touches my reproductive organs. I feel sensations of
tickling and begin to feel great joy. My arms and legs begin to expand and I stretch in all four
directions - north, south, east, and west. The small bones in my neck are stretching and the space
between them is opening. There is more room in my being now. My facial bones and other
bones move and readjust. I am both observing and experiencing. As I stand in the light of the
sun, dripping in golden light, I breathe the light in and out. Then I merge with the light.
I feel greater awareness. The light extends beyond me and I can see everything within its
radius. But I cannot see into the dark space beyond the rim of light. My perception is only as
good as my level of conscious awareness. I am light, conditioned with specific cut and design to
serve my purpose. I take a deep breath and feel my Soul light. Afterward, I cannot think for the
longest time.
The effects of this powerful vision were immediate. I no longer wished to be ignorant of
the dark and unremembered parts of myself. I was certain my conscious connection with my
Light filtered into the dark spaces and everything became more visible. I felt humbled by
the Source and Infinite Self that had given birth to my Soul, my mind, my finite self, Ruby. I
broke out in a big smile, knowing there was a much bigger trickster than myself. Then came
A six-year old Tibetan boy sits in front of his master. “I can’t! I can’t!” he cries.
“Yes, you can,” the determined master replies as he aims a tiny sharp stone at the boy’s
third eye.
Every few minutes the master throws another stone which hits the boy on the same spot.
The boy whimpers with pain but soon becomes quiet. Blood drips from the open wound and
runs down his face but the boy does not move. The process continues. The master aims a few
more stones at the boy’s third eye but the boy no longer reacts. He has become one with the
pain. A few more stones and the blood still drips. Now the boy has gone beyond feeling and is
Later he describes the experience to his master. He explains that not knowing when the
other stone was coming created more fear than pain. Once he became aware of this anxiety, the
pain reduced considerably. The warm dripping blood distracted him further from his pain and
soon his sensations disappeared. He has no words to describe what happened after that. All he
can say is there was a definite point of separation. He ceased to exist in a split-second.
The master needs no explanation; he knows the boy’s experience. He smiles, knowing he
made the right decision in choosing this young boy out of many. The selection process was
tedious; there is no easy way to determine the next Bodhisattva14 who will carry on the mission
The boy was picked from a neighbouring village. It was his mother who informed the
head monk of the boy’s uncanny ability to communicate with the invisible, his innate knowledge,
and his deep interest in the metaphysical. The head monk had been quick to summon the boy,
and after considerable testing and questioning was convinced this was no young Soul. This was
the Soul of an experienced master who had come back to complete an unfulfilled purpose. He
reported his findings to the lama and the following spring, the lama came down to the village to
14
In Buddhism, a bodhisattva means either "enlightened (bodhi) existence (sattva)" or "enlightenment-being"
Also, "Wisdom-Being." It is the name given to anyone who, motivated by great compassion, has generated
bodhichitta, a spontaneous wish to attain Buddhahood for the benefit of all living beings. From Wikipedia.
The lama asked the boy to sit on the floor and meditate upon the fire that was burning in
one part of the room. Beside him was placed a walking stick, a metal bowl, and meditation
beads. While staring at the fire, the boy was able to connect with the subtle realms and locate the
previous three masters who had transcended to higher levels of awareness, beyond the Soul and
physical body. These masters worked with consciousness and had developed a way to manifest
consciousness with intention, energy, and intelligence. They had given a new meaning to being
The boy had successfully retrieved the desired information and expressed it with such
care and integrity, the lama was impressed. The boy described the work of the masters and gave
proof he carried the incarnated intelligence that would continue the work of the masters. The
lama became certain this boy was the expression of a master he was meant to mentor. For
several years he had prepared himself for this purpose, expecting the boy’s arrival.
As the boy continued to meditate on the fire, the lama watched him withdraw into a silent
trance. Half an hour later, both the boy and the lama were vibrating at the same frequency where
they could decipher the secret code and access the work of the previous masters, including their
intelligence, knowledge, and plans. The lama had quickly declared the boy as a master-to-be and
vowed to fulfill his promise to provide the environment and discipline necessary to nurture the
boy and the promise. As was the custom, the boy bid farewell to his parents, received their
The boy had no problem adapting to the new life. He knew he was exactly where he was
supposed to be. The daily rituals and disciplines were all designed to hold the finest vibration of
light, energy, and spaciousness. Work was like play and his mind was a playground. As the
subtle realm became increasingly real, he learned to play with it. He also played with the life
force and gave it shape and form, like a sculptor moulds clay. Everything he did - eating,
drinking, sleeping, living, and meditating - was designed to heighten his awareness; every step
was a challenge and a lesson in wisdom. Under the wings of the best teachers, he developed the
eye of Soul and explored the realm of the super conscious mind. He learned to transcend the
limitations of the ordinary mind and develop non-local awareness. The realms of light and
darkness were equally his playground and he knew them as two sides of the same coin.
Whenever the boy related his experiences, he made others part of his journey. They
enjoyed the travel and the unscripted spaces he took them to, without moving. Being young and
mischievous, he would sometimes take an alternative route to the one prescribed by the masters.
The lama let him explore the new territory as long as he understood he had to return.
Knowing it takes a strong psyche to work in the subtle and causal dimensions, the lama
had selected a boy who was healthy in all respects. He chose a boy who was spiritually aligned
with the purpose of this work, who could remember the past and use that remembrance to
The Master taught the boy how to maintain a healthy psyche. “Be aware of the voices,”
he warned. “The personal space is filled with the sound vibration of individual energy matter,
clamouring for attention. To attain internal peace, you must acknowledge and master these
voices or energies. If you do not understand them, they can turn into demonic forces and corrode
your Soul. Our well-being is in direct proportion to balancing our interior and exterior worlds,
balancing the personal and non-personal dimensions, and moving from the fractional to the
whole.”
The boy felt the weight of his responsibility. To be a member of this group of masters
was not just a privilege, but a huge undertaking. Such a commitment to the work took lifetimes
to accomplish. There was no room for change or withdrawal once the commitment had been
made.
As I experienced the young boy’s story, I felt compelled to meditate upon the fire that the
lama had lit for the boy. Moments later, I was drawn into the fire. I felt a burning, melting and
My eyes stared into the fire but I was not watching. I was no longer seeing; I had become
the seeing. I heard the master’s voice say, “Watching only helps you concentrate. What you see
is not important. Physical and subtle sight is no longer necessary once you make the connection
with the non-local mind. Seeing, or being conscious of this or that, is simply a distraction.
Trying to understand and make sense of the meaning keeps us from connecting with true
insight.”
The master’s words, “don’t just see, see,” flashed across my mind. I stared into the fire
until my eyes dried out and I lost all sensation. My eyes burned from the internal heat and just
when I could no longer bear to keep them open, something dropped. My physical eyes ceased to
There was no way of knowing how long I disappeared; the mind that keeps track of time
was not present. Afterward, I realized the boy had used this simple exercise to enter the space
The vision of the young Tibetan boy brought me face-to-face with my inheritance and
with that, a burden and a responsibility settled upon me. I knew I was cut from the same cloth. I
too had made the promise and would not be able to withdraw until I had completed my promise.
All I could do was bow my head in surrender. No sooner had I surrendered when the vision
My life is rigorous, yet enchanting. There is the cold Tibetan winter with its snow-
peaked mountains and chilly, whistling winds. Shivering cold streams flow down the
mountainside. There are dark caves and bright blinding sunlight. There is singing and chanting,
the laughter of young boys chasing white and yellow butterflies, and the scent of wild flowers.
“Sleep is not necessary, but rest is,” says the master. “Awakened Souls do not sleep.” I
The intrigue of the unknown and the responsibility of fulfilling my purpose are far more
meaningful than the every day rituals and harsh discipline. But this is the way and surrendering
to the way is half the battle. My love for the unknown, coupled with my desire to be the first to
“You are born to be free,” says the master. “And this freedom is for a cause- to free
others. And only when you have set others free, will you be free.”
“How will I know when I have set others free?” I hear myself asking, with deep concern.
“When you no longer seek freedom, you will be free,” he says. “When others around you
break the mud castles they have made, you will know you have set them free.” The master’s
words come from a deep place and I know they are true. I know they will stay with me for all
time.
I find myself sitting on a rock with my feet touching the cold swift waters of a shallow
river. I stare at a tiny black pebble in the river bed. The bright sun reflects light in the water and
it is hard to always see the pebble. But my gaze is stronger than the force of the light and the
moving water. At no time I do I lose sight of this tiny black rock. Even the strong Himalayan
winds cannot distract me or break my focus. The masters have taught me how to concentrate and
As the vision faded, I felt a deep love for the masters and wished I was still there, even
thought there is in me. Without difficulty, I could see the parallels between that life and this one,
ability to rise after each crash; my trust in the masters and my Soul. All these signalled I was on
a purposeful path.
I was given the ability to discern between Soul, Spirit, and matter. And I found a new
meaning for religion. We are born Hindu, Sikh, Jew, Christian, Buddhist, or Muslim for a
reason, I realized. Each tradition offers a distinct pathway to realize our Soul potential. We have
a strong emotional bond with our religion which can offer inspiration and once we can respect
that, we can then transcend the limitations of that bond and reach greater spiritual heights. While
religion gives us a way of connecting to the Divine, spirituality gives us a way to live the divine
With the mirror now clean, I could see more clearly. I was one hundred percent
responsible for my life. In the past, I had danced to the music of my own Soul, every time. This
life was no different. Whether I danced the waltz, the flamenco, or the rumba was up to me.
My visions opened up another dimension in my psyche; for the first time I looked
forward to be proven wrong. I realized how much fun it was to be challenged, since challenge
brought forth more conscious and continuous growth. I found a better way of communicating. I
realized open communication is when two people spontaneously speak, listen, and respond from
what is being said in the moment. The formula was simple: Listen as you speak and listen as
others speak. Respond to what you hear without bringing in personal agendas and ideologies. I
also realized that lecturing, teaching, preaching, and even emphasizing your own truth are often a
One night as I closed my eyes to meditate, I had a vision of a tree laden with fruit. The
weight of the abundant fruit had bent the branches until they were almost touching the ground. I
could not help feeling like the tree. I too was blessed with abundance and all I wanted was to
share it with everyone. Then I saw hundreds of birds flying in a figure eight in the sky above.
My heart jumped out of my body as I invited them to play with me and share my fruit. “Come
near,” I whispered to them. “Be here where I am, and taste my juice and sweetness, for I cannot
die until I have shared it all. Take me, take all of me. I am ready.”
Chapter Ten
Twenty-One Minutes to Freedom
“Dear God, let no day pass with me not knowing who I am.”
I silently thanked Ma ji for introducing me to the four light-pillar meditation and the Soul
guides. I felt more expansive knowing there was much more to me than I had previously
anticipated. My visions had become the doorway through which I connected with parts of
myself, and I was eager to see what else might unfold. I wanted to know every part of my being.
The fear of not getting to know myself fully was far greater than any other fear.
I realized I had embarked on a new journey. My Soul was holding my hand and guiding
me through the spiritual realms. I was being taken to an unknown destination. The timing was
impeccable and, like Alice in Wonderland, I was ready for the magic.
The recent visions had deeply affected me both internally and externally. Inside, I was
filling up quickly. I knew I could become confused and overwhelmed if I tried to interfere with
the process, or even fully understand it, so I decided to wait and simply observe it. I knew that
without relevant experience, the information I was receiving might not make sense. Any
meaning I might impose on it at this point could turn out to be just another ideology. This
realization kept me from guessing or even wanting to know more than was necessary. It was
It was now a few weeks into November and there was a feeling of pre-winter bustle in the
air; the streets had been cleaned and the city was looking its best. The bright sunlight and the
cool temperatures were heavenly. It felt as if the sun and earth were entwined in a romantic
embrace, nurturing the last glow of autumn. Looking up at the canopy of tall mature elm trees, I
could see no signs of stress or pressure from the changing weather. The leaves that fell seemed
to do so willingly and those that stayed seemed to be there willfully. Everything seemed to have
a choice; I could sense the truth of free will everywhere. Everything felt resolved and at peace.
I was not anticipating any more visions, but a few days later another came that seemed to
confirm my inner state. This time, my vision took me to a place I had yearned to be for over half
my life.
I am a few feet away from reaching the top of Mt. Everest. Only a few more moves and I
will be there. But I am struggling. My foot keeps slipping and I could fall any second. At the
At the bottom of the mountain, I had help and support as I prepared for the climb but
once I began climbing I found myself alone. Now I am struggling and lack the energy to climb
the last few steps. Finally, with a last couple of pushes I reach the top. As I do, my fatigue and
fear instantly evaporate and I feel rejuvenated. I thank God the journey has ended. Finally, there
is nothing above.
As I look down, I see how far away the bottom of the mountain is. Suddenly, I realize,
the journey I chose was so treacherous it almost cost my life. The path I chose was opposite to
the way I had been raised. To reach the top, I had gone against my cultural, religious, and social
beliefs and traditions to seek peace for my aching Soul. The search was agonizing and full of
suffering. The lifestyle I chosen had cost me friendships, relationships and financial security. I
may have looked tough to others, but inside I suffered from the burden of guilt and shame for
Not having a living guide and not knowing where I was headed had been unnerving.
Alone and lonely, with only my inner hunches to guide me, I was determined to find out who I
was and connect with my authenticity. Even so, I had not lost a single opportunity to experience
something new. To achieve this, I had been willing to go to any depth, to climb any height.
Looking around, I realize that my vision of Mount Everest is a symbolic message from
within, telling me I have arrived at my destination. In my awareness, I rise above the mountain.
From this height, the Himalayan peak seems like a giant wearing a white cloak of light. The
Just then I look up and see an eagle circling overhead. I stare at it, trying to pull its
attention toward me, but it takes no notice. I break into a smile. How could I be so foolish as to
believe I am at the top and there is nothing above? One part of me is tempted to continue the
ascent and fly with the eagle. But another part is content to remain exactly where I am. That
part is not willing to let go of the peace and grace of this moment.
For the first time in my life, I say no to the temptation of continually seeking. I say no to
the ascending current, no to moving forward. For the first time, I have the strength to choose. In
the past I was possessed by an obsession to keep moving, growing, and learning, deluded that I
was acting out of choice. But today my inner voice tells me I must rest in this place and enjoy
the completion of one goal before I move on to another. Perhaps I no longer have the energy to
I recall a conversation with my aunt a few years ago while I was visiting New Delhi.
“Ruby,” she asked, “Do you think it is necessary to have a living guide?”
I hummed and hawed and then began to philosophize. She stopped me short. “To
become free of your ego, it is necessary to have someone above you,” she said. “It keeps you
humble. Your guide may or may not always have all the answers but your very act of surrender
opens the heart and mind. It is our openness to receiving, not the content of what we receive,
I take a deep breath. Today, I am happy to have the eagle soar above me; it feels
protective. As the vision comes to a close, I find myself standing on top of Mt. Everest with out-
stretched arms. The sun showers its brilliance upon the mountain and I am covered in blinding
white light. Just then the eagle glides over me, shading me from the sun. I open my eyes, able to
After the vision faded I felt refreshed and rejuvenated, as if a cool breeze had wafted over
me. Only later did I realize the vision was a message from Soul telling me I had completed the
task of returning home. There was nothing more I needed to learn. I had what I needed and was
exactly where I needed to be. I was protected and had the light of awareness within me.
My place of birth, my family, my friends, my work, and all my experiences had been
beautifully orchestrated to fit my Soul-code and support my growth. Everything was a fit. At a
deeper level, I knew I had chosen them of my own free will, even all the painful experiences. I
had always had the freedom to say yes or no. I had always been free, without knowing it.
I thought of how my journey to spiritual freedom had been harsh and had brought me to
my knees. I wondered what my journey would have been like if I had believed from the start
that I was already always free. Would I have suffered anyway? Did I suffer because of my lack
As I looked down the mountain, I realized the journey up is difficult. However, once a
conscious connection to Soul is made, the journey back down can be easy, comfortable, and
enjoyable. I began to think of the journey up the mountain as connecting with the Soul and the
journey down as living from the Soul. This sparked off another vision.
I see a river with a strong current of water, roaring and gushing. The water pushes all the
debris in its system onto the riverbank, thereby clearing the way for its own flow. The riverbank
is unable to clear the debris on its own. As I watch both the raging river and the cluttered bank, I
become conscious of my own nature. I am like the river; I like to take charge, keep moving, and
throw the obstacles to the side. In the process, I can deposit a lot of debris. The vision explained
Now, it was time to go down the mountain, to consciously connect with my Soul
Promise, and to live that promise. Although I had no details or memory of making the promise, I
I decided to resume the Four Pillar meditation but with a focus on the Soul Promise.
Wanting to get right to the point, I devised a simple prayer asking to be connected with my
promise. The information I needed was not outside; it was within me.
I knew from experience I would receive images, visions, and dreams disclosing the secret of my
Soul Promise.
ready and willing to connect with my Soul partners and take full responsibility for my promise.
Let it come to me now.” Then I focused on my body and held the energy within that space.
I continued to meditate each day. I received no images, dreams, or visions but the very
act of sitting in silence for twenty-one minutes each day strengthened my connection to my core
self. I felt more relaxed and sometimes I could not, or did not want to, break the silence within.
Soon I began noticing some subtle differences. I began to enjoy socializing, meeting
friends and new people. I felt I was more open and accepting than before. I realized many of us
are fulfilling the same Soul Promise in different ways, and sometimes it takes many different
people to fulfill one Soul Promise. With heightened awareness, one can actually see the
workings of the Soul Promise within friends, community, relatives and environment.
Return to India
Blessings from Ancestors
It was time to travel again. Inder and I were off to India for a winter holiday. My plan was
to meet each and every relative. For the first time I had a yearning to connect with all of them,
The night before our departure, Ma ji appeared to me in another vision. She asked me to
accompany her to a place with huge halls where I would meet with someone.
The doors open to a great hall and I see all my female relatives, maternal and paternal,
sitting together in a group as if posing for a photo shoot. I am surprised to see my mother, my
grandmothers, my two sisters, my aunts, and my cousins. I look at Ma ji and then at each one of
them. There are no words to express my emotion and my tears fall uncontrollably. This is the
first time I am reunited with them since they had passed away. They all welcome me with love
“They have gathered to bless you and tell you they are proud of what you are doing,” she
says. “They did not have the courage to live the way you have lived. You broke the family
tradition and chose a different path and this has created a new opening for others to follow. They
are here to remind you that you carry not only the name of your forefathers but also the dream of
“They want you to know you have their support and your promise is their promise. You
are free of all ancestral debt. You will not be haunted by any family stress or burden. They
encourage you to move forward with strength and confidence, to fulfill your spiritual contract.”
I knew exactly what these women were saying and why. Sometimes we carry not only
personal but also familial promises that need to be kept before we can meet our commitments to
larger groups. Completing our Soul Promise frees us and our entire blood and root line.
I can feel love and strength radiating from these beautiful women and I am proud to be
one of them. Even though I have adopted a different way to express my Soul Promise, I am still
part of their Soul history. I can feel their richness flowing in my veins and I am proud of my
heritage. And in that moment, I free myself of my guilt for abandoning the family traditions.
The heavy burden of wrong-doing and causing undue hurt to my loved ones lifts from me and I
can feel the shame leave my body. This time I congratulate myself for having the strength to
Standing there, I begin to weep and they cry with me. The flowing tears cleanse us all
and replace the shame and guilt, mine and theirs, with a deep feeling of love.
I don’t know how long I was with them but I do remember walking over and standing
with the group. Then a light flashed as the universe photographed and captured us all in one
frame. It was a profound moment; the women of my family had come together to celebrate the
Soul Promise.
I awoke suddenly with light blinding my eyes. The skeptic in me wondered if my vision
was real but deep down I knew it was. I could still felt the warm, embracing presence of the
women of my family. I felt as though I had been born again, but unlike my physical birth, there
The next day we left for India and I fully expected to enjoy a glorious time. Instead, I
found a very different experience. Shopping, catching up with Indian movies and fashion, and
meeting with relatives somehow felt superficial. Instead of joy, there was an inner numbness
and sadness with me at all times. I was unable to sit quietly for my meditations and when I did I
To my dismay, I realized nothing ever disappears; it simply goes underground and then
reappears when we least expect it. Little do we realize that the subconscious is like a large
multi-unit storage facility which has the space to hold the memory of every event, feeling, and
experience. Nothing gets missed. In a split second, the gates can open and out flow the
unresolved and ugly feelings. Like uninvited friends, they bombard our senses and hijack the
mind-space.
It made no sense. Here I was on a most desired holiday and without notice, all my old
traumas were back. Who or what had let in these unwanted guests? Amidst the internal turmoil,
it was hard to become peaceful and practice the twenty-one-minute meditation. I felt unhealthy
and unable to connect with the light-pillar guides or the field of information. There were no
visions, dreams or even desires. The inner lights were switched off and I could not find the on-
My situation felt hopeless. Occasionally, I tried to cry or laugh just to bring on a feeling
but nothing worked. Then, despite my fears that things could go very wrong if I did not take
control, I decided to surrender and let the chips fall as they would. I stopped trying to fix things
or save myself. And I refused to play the hand I had been dealt. Resentfully I stepped back, just
Three weeks went by and I remained in my cocoon. I felt as though I had regressed back
into a fetus. A close friend told me I was depressed and tried to get me to express my feelings. I
humoured her but without any passion. Then, from half-way around the world, my cousin Roma
called with the news that her husband Raj had died suddenly. And everything changed.
Chapter Eleven
The Soul’s Promise, Raj’s Death
“We need freedom for life, not from life. The purpose on the physical plane is not to seek
freedom; rather it is to connect with
our authentic self and physically manifest our Soul dream. The earth plane partners with us,
giving us ample space, opportunity and resources to manifest that dream."
It was an early morning of March 2006 in New Delhi when my cousin Roma called with
the news. Raj was her husband. We had met at their daughter’s wedding in Los Angeles only a
few months ago. At the time, Raj seemed healthy and happy, exuding strength and confidence.
The entire household reflected a similar energy. There were signs of abundance
everywhere, especially noticeable in Raj’s garden. The fruit trees were laden with oranges,
grapefruit, guavas, and lemons, ripe with juice and colour. Each shrub presented itself like a
bouquet of flowers, arranged by a master artist. The pink and red roses seemed especially large
this year. Raj could barely conceal his pride and joy, smiling shyly like a young boy. “Oh yes,
One night, as he sat in the family room in his favourite spot overlooking the sea of lights
in the valley below and sipping his favourite scotch, he seemed more reflective than usual. I
could see him swaying in and out of his inner space and gazing into the dark night. Speaking
softly, he said, “I am tired and want complete rest. I am going to soon retire and take a holiday.
I want to go to a remote place where there is no phone and where I cannot be reached. I want to
be at peace.”
“Will you be taking Roma with you?” I asked. Raj merely smiled.
I could still see the smile. Raj, you must have found your peace, I said to him in my
thoughts.
Then my thoughts flew to Roma. I quickly entered her world, scanning present and
upcoming events, and felt relieved that all was well, now and in the future. Roma’s unusual
calmness and composure did not speak of denial. Rather, she was rising to the occasion and
caring for others as they expressed their grief and shock. I knew she would grieve the loss of her
I called Roma. Just as I had envisioned, she was calm, describing Raj’s passing with the
equanimity of an observer. As I consoled her, I felt I was doing so more for my sake than hers.
After the call, it took me a few moments to settle down. I noticed I was quickly
absorbing the sadness and shock. And then, I suddenly felt lightened, as though someone had
wiped the emotions off my forehead and cleared the mental space.
I closed my eyes to tune in to Raj. As I did so, a large cloud of light came straight at me.
My eyelids tightened upon impact, and as the cloud penetrated my being, I could feel a cool
wave of light within my body space. When I opened my eyes, these words came to mind: Pass
over, resurrection, rising, return; I was reminded of Christ. Then I saw Raj smiling. I
immediately realized that Raj was fine, that he was in a transitional space, and that it was best to
The light cloud left me feeling exhilarated. The spiritual creativity filling my being was a
sign of new beginnings; I was about to deliver something new. At the same time, I felt a little
guilty about feeling freedom instead of loss. Then I was hit with the realization that after we die
there is nothing to lose; we only worry about loss when we are alive. I remembered Roma being
worried about Raj’s health and heart condition, and now that he was gone she was free of that
worry. Why can’t life set us free, I wondered? Why must death be the only ticket to freedom
from worry?
The three weeks after Raj’s death contrasted sharply with the previous three weeks when
I had felt hopeless and disconnected. Instead of cocooning, I now travelled, met with friends,
and enjoyed the Indian hospitality. Raj and the white light cloud had pushed out the darkness
Flying back to Canada from India can be a twenty hour ordeal but I was prepared for the
journey. Upon take-off I tried to release the tension. No sooner did I close my eyes I bumped
into Raj. I was surprised as I had not seen him since the day of his death.
“Freedom,” I exhaled with a deep breath. Raj disappeared and I sank further into my
seat. Four hours later I woke up feeling relaxed, and noticed there was incoming mail in my
computer brain. The subject was freedom. My life-long desire for freedom must have triggered
some kind of response from the Cosmos. Surprisingly, the actual message contained no words. I
could only process it silently and respond with, “Oh yes! I get it now; I know; I can see.”
My first realization was that we need freedom for life, not from life. At the level of Soul
intelligence, we are the actor, the director, the scriptwriter and designer of our own play. We
stage the play upon the space of consciousness and we are fully aware of the dream. At the
deepest level, we are the clearing in which the dream arises and the play is performed.
On the physical plane, the purpose is not to seek freedom; rather, it is to connect with our
authentic self and physically manifest our Soul dream. The earth plane partners with us, giving
us ample space, opportunity and resources to manifest that dream. It is our loss of connection to
that dream which throws us off and taints our perception. Our limited perception interprets our
playground as a struggle ground, our Soul partners as strangers, and our spiritual play as
hardship. We perceive the twists and turns in the road as barriers and the stop signs as dead-
ends. We see the many roads as points of confusion. The entire landscape becomes distorted
when we look at it from a smaller, more limited perspective. But the songs and dances of the
spiritual player fill this space with creative manifestations. And all of this only becomes visible
Because the play is a Soul design, only the designer is aware of the play. And unless we
connect with the Soul designer, we can never understand the joy and purpose that manifestation
entails. The less developed our awareness, the more we need the help of signposts and
landmarks and the assistance of others. Our clashes with others are signs that we are lacking
internal awareness.
For an ego-based person, the dream is misunderstood as personal ambition. In reality, the
dream is a Soul’s spiritual contribution to the earth space. In the act of manifestation, we leave
behind part of our Soul and this is the highest act of surrender. We create children, not because
they need to benefit from us, nor we from them, but for the play of consciousness upon the earth
plane.
This new understanding of freedom shook me to the core. Freedom had always been
my deepest desire and I had given up friends, relationships, my birth name, my heritage, my
inheritance, and all that I believed had stood in my way. And now, just when I finally felt free, a
different understanding of freedom had appeared, without warning. This new understanding felt
“The Source, too, must also be involved in our game as it cycles between breathing in our
experience and exhaling itself into individualization for the sake of experience.”
We arrived home in Canada and that night we decided to meditate together. We invited
our guides and close friends in spirit to join us, including Ma ji. Afterwards I decided to take a
stroll in the subtle realm to see what else might be going on.
And there was Raj. He was holding a satchel of envelopes containing invitations for a
special gathering that was being held in thirteen days. Several special guests were being invited,
he said.
“It’s the gathering of free thinkers and genius minds, a Soul group, working on something
special,” he replied. “Souls with different forms of intelligence have decided to come together to
combine forces and create a unique form of intelligence. Their intention is to create a unique
“To keep in pace with the changing times, the future demands a new perspective, greater
intelligence and a super conscious mind and body,” he guessed. “And space is created through
silence.”
“The guests are poets, mystics, scientists, philosophers, artists, politicians, and more.
These are the Celebrates; ones who can successfully completed their missions, purpose and lived
up to their promise and fullest potential. They will jointly share their essence and revitalize and
“Possibly.” It was obvious that Raj did not want to say more but I was not ready to end
the conversation.
I tried to imagine what the group intelligence would be like. I could smell the scent of
spring but it had to be more than spring. When such enlightened and spiritual minds come
Although Raj had promised to be back, I couldn’t wait; I was not going to miss this
opportunity. I decided to be watchful and keep my eyes open for any other leads. If Raj’s
That night I tried to connect with the group, and saw the faces and names of brilliant
minds. Some I recognized; many I did not. The group included Socrates, Albert Einstein, Sir
Isaac Newton, Shakespeare, Michelangelo, Gandhi, Rumi, Mother Teresa, and many more. I
was surprised to see Princess Diana sitting with Mother Teresa with a baby in her lap. I felt a
sharp nudge in my Soul- this was it. This gathering would push through the old to give birth to
the new.
I decided to be a silent observer, at this event and I was determined to absorb the new
intelligence to my fullest.
The next day Raj showed up, but it was to deliver personal messages to his family. He
was sensitive about my time and energy and very cautious as to how he expressed himself to his
relatives. He was probably the most courteous Soul I have ever met. He regretted that while he
was living, he had not expressed things in a way his loved ones could receive. He told me to
pass on the messages exactly as he relayed them. I assured him I was a qualified delivery
After relaying the messages, Raj told me about his death. He told me he did not know
until the last few breaths that he was dying. He was in shock. The last time he suffered a heart
attack he had prayed and asked God to give him more time to live. He wanted to work on
himself and become a better human being. He wanted to feel worthy of God’s grace and reach
spiritual realization while still in physical form. That makes sense, I thought. What good is
Raj continued, “God granted my wish and I got better. After that, I prayed daily,
thanking God and asking for guidance. I did my best to share my blessings with each and every
person I met. I followed a daily practice and tried to be better than the previous day. I tried to be
helpful to everyone,” he said. Raj seemed profoundly content. He had cleared his issues before
Raj said his death had been fast and easy, that the transit time was mercifully minimal. “I
was horizontal and then vertical again,” he said. He told me he’d stood up straight without any
scars, trauma, fear, or loss of memory, and ready for a new assignment. He was not surprised
about his new work because he had put in a request to work with ascended masters and teachers.
His purpose was to learn and share knowledge simultaneously. And now he was doing just that.
Before he left, Raj said that God had given him a sign; he should have guessed the end
was near. He was at peace inside and his garden was finally full of flowering scents and fruit-
laden trees. He had not seen God, but felt the Presence and that was enough for him. Then his
eyes filled with tears, he smiled shyly, and with his head down left as quietly as he had come.
On the appointed day of the special Soul group gathering, I stationed my inner being in
silence along with the other participants. The process of the silent migration of intelligence was
familiar to me. The body and mind had to be on empty for the download with no external
stimuli. The inner mind through silence is tuned in to the space, it’s like plugging into the galatic
brain that once plugged in transmits the frequencies of light and sound of the new intelligence.
Interestingly, the download is natural and effortless; it is full and complete transference
and not just fragmented thoughts or a few channelled messages. By being one with that
dimension the messages arise as insights and life force . This is what I used when I wanted to be
with another mind. It eliminates the need to retain information at a mental level and there is no
I maintained the silence and tried not to use my sense at all. I knew that everything that
was being transferred would soon become integrated in me in a way best suited for me.
“Freedom without responsibility is as absurd as placing a stop sign on a ten lane highway.”
The new input turned my focus to freedom and responsibility. I realized that only a mind
burdened with stress and conditioning seeks freedom because it does not recognize it’s true
identity, Source and power. Further, the onset of temporary amnesia resulting from
misidentification can drop it from the original state of awareness to states of confusion and slight
delusion. One simply forgets their true self and starts to think and act contrary to the inner
values. The forgotten identity results in fear and distress, having lost the memory of the self and
all it’s potential to create. Creating from spiritual the physical manifestation, is a super conscious
act that only a super conscious mind is capable of creating. It is an act of absolute force and free
will. The earth planet is the physical plane where a Soul can physically replicate it’s spiritual
reality. This is why one chooses the most appropriate culture and environment to experience
one’s self in a one-of-a-kind way. From the beginning to the end, the journey in between is self
guided and every experience is chosen to reflect aspects of our true state.
Our intention, purpose, resources and the know-how is imbedded in our DNA, in every
cell of our being. The entire body contains the memory of who we are and what we want to
create. Losing this conscious state of awareness simply means forgetting that we are free.
Freedom has no other purpose than to fulfill the promise for our physical manifestation.
On the physical plane freedom transcends into responsibility; this is where choices
manifest through inspired activity. Since truth is perceived differently at different stages, a mind
caged by personal inhibitions and limitations desires freedom first, this is to break free from the
inner state of captivity. Having lost the ability to comprehend the truth, it drops in energy,
Whereas responsibility is a way to govern, organize and utilize the inner resources, it is an asset
to an awakened mind.
Having experienced both stages I knew what this meant. Not being aware and fully
conscious could lead to human extinction. The biggest threat to humans is their own kind. In
absolution of human values any violence is possible, and we have plenty evidence of that. I had
an idea that the Soul group was working to create a new way to bypass the mental-intellectual
field of perception and replace it with awakened instinctual force from within the physical
organism itself. This new sensory field is not dependant on old system of using the brain to learn
and comprehend and then utilize the information. It is timeless and space less. However
specificity of things plays a significant role to express and experience full potential
Why do we have specific desires when there is so much to choose from? Why do we
need things to be a specific way? Why do we pursue one person or one thing when there are so
many and so much available? These questions would often grab my attention. I was intrigued by
a Soul’s specificity. It’s unique manifestation, specific life design and dream, purpose and a plan
with specific time. I had noticed how the specifics worked with the grand orchestration and
conspiracy and synchronicity. The role of planetary influences upon my specifics had not gone
unnoticed. I realized that the planet earth has it’s own part to play; in fact the land that we think
belongs to us as individuals is really the part and parcel of the earth property. We can use it but
not remove it. Everything we create will remain here. It rises from the earth and will there till it
falls back into the earth. I thought of it as a playground for spirit. Each Soul adds their own color
and flavor creating new realities that together keep this planet pulsating with forever new
inspired formations. To know God, one must consciously experience the planet earth along with
each and every inhabitant and to do so means to embody your specifics and live your
authenticity, this is what true identity is. From here we leap into the mind of God to serve our
bigger purpose.
Only when we have broken through the illusion can we see the illusion did not exist.
the quest. I realized that each seeker, no matter what they seek will keep seeking till they have
exhausted their full potential. Seeking is sign that there is still untapped potential left to be
utilized. Though the ways of seeking may differ, the goal ultimately is the same, to find your true
identity, to create with your unique authenticity, and to contribute to something bigger than
yourself. All other desires simply are to fulfill the first three.
My personal fight for freedom only stopped when I came into the full realization of my
Soul Promise. The realization did not come instantly but in parts. I had always known about the
Soul and about the spiritual relationship we have each other, nature, the universe, and God. I
also knew there was a reason for my being here and now, and I thought being humble, loving,
and kind was enough to live a spiritual life. However, it was not until my spiritual awakening in
1992 that I got an inkling of a deeper purpose in life. Not until I started to get a glimpse of some
of my past lives did I realize that past now is the present. We live the sum total of who we are
and being conscious optimizes the mind body instrument to serve our specific purpose the best.
For this reason, we can approach our Soul script from any end, whether through the past or the
The juncture between life and death is also a good place to read the Soul script, as this is
where a Soul regroups and plans for the future. In this in-between state, we are conscious of
both the worlds, the one we have left behind, and the one we are about to enter. This astral plane
contains the recordings of our mastermind and offers clues about who we are. It is also a
meeting place between two worlds, a common ground where those in spirit and those in body
may meet. It sometimes functions like a classroom. This is where I first met my teachers,
guides, and masters in 1992. This is where I became conscious of my knowledge and developed
my inner knowing and spiritual sense. I learned how to access deeper spiritual levels and
retrieve the information I needed for health and healing. Here, I developed the ability to
The thin light veil separating one world from another dropped and I recognized the
purpose of the Soul Promise. I realized we are each here to do something specific, in a specific
way. Together we fulfill our promises. Our Soul Promise is an artistic expression of spirit and
I had worked with the Soul before and now I wanted to go deeper. After connecting with
Raj and the group of Souls, I wanted to learn about the origin of the Soul, the first promise. I
wanted to find out about the first incarnation, the first manifestation, the first pulse of separation.
I wanted to know the first step we took into the world of physical form, the first appearance of
the individual, the first persona, the first cell created from intelligence. I wanted to see beyond
It did not take very long for my intention to manifest. My first client took me right to the
source and I received visual information almost immediately. The Soul Promise was exactly
where I thought it would be, in the face of the first manifestation. One glimpse and I could read
the entire script. The Soul Promise flashed back at me. I read the promise and the Soul
commitment out loud to my client and he totally resonated with the message. We did not stop
there. Within minutes, we had enough information to put together a plan for physically
And with that, another chapter of my work opened and I began receiving clients who
wanted to retrieve their Soul Promise. They felt they should be doing something, but did not
know what. These sessions were very different from my previous work. There were no guides
or personal messages. I worked in a field of information that contained the history of the Soul.
The information was less personal and more precise. I worked in three steps.
3. I incorporated the Soul Promise into an action plan to help the client live their
“inlightenment” on a daily basis. This is what I call living with all lights on,
positioning yourself in the God center and accessing the divine intelligence to
This time I worked with clients, I could witness that the Soul life begins with intention
and ends with the fulfillment of the intention, it is the earth plane where the action happens. The
earth plane is truly a spiritual playground where we require, acquire, and retire, all within a short
period of time. Whatever we hold, possess, or own must be given away, we can enjoy the
Every Soul’s desire is to materialize the dreams and live a signature life. Fulfilling the
Soul Promise exhausts our old debts, past promises. It cleans the slate and gives us a fresh and
peaceful.
Learning from Raj, I wanted to utilize my Soul potential while still in a physical body so
I became determined to fully unveil my Soul Promise. I suspected there were many like me,
searching for their forgotten promises and if I could find mine, I would help with theirs. Then I
had a vision.
I see my first cell being created from pure intelligence. The cells start to multiply but I
notice that the subsequent cells are more informational and not as potent as the first one. Only
the original cell has the code to the spiritual treasury; it contains the memory of pure intelligence
I am determined to find that original cell within myself. I place my intention and
attention upon the physical and subtle planes, to locate the original cell. After a long time, I
realize that the original cell lies within my body. I sit for hours moving my attention from one
part of my body to another. I find the process to be very comfortable and addictive but I do not
find what I am looking for. Then I realize what I am looking for is in the sub-particles of my
being. At once, I direct my attention to the cell structure and the cells rise in energy as if to
answer my call. I watch how the informational cells separate, making way for the original cell to
rise. I place my attention on the original cell and cause it to break open. I watch in awe as pure
intelligence pours out from the original cell and flows to every other cell, igniting a light force.
Every cell is touched by originality. My entire body is converted from information to pure
When the vision ended, I recognized myself to be an eccentric spiritual scientist who will
not rest until a way is found to awaken pure intelligence in every cell with the flick of a switch. I
realized that one part of my own Soul Promise is to be conscious of my Source and another part
of my Soul Promise is to express my potential with full force. This is possible with a full-blown
connection to Soul. In the process of fulfilling and living with purpose, I must offer the same
choices and opportunities to others on similar journeys. If I can also support my Soul friends at
Chapter Twelve
June 2006, Monica Returns
It was now about ten years since my client Monica had died from cancer, leaving her
dream of building a healing centre unfulfilled. Over the years, she had appeared to me several
times in her light body, always while I was in session with a client. She would enter gracefully
and silently observe the interaction between my client and me. Occasionally, she would whisper,
“Don’t mind me. I’m just here to learn.” She would then position herself to my left in a sort of
meditative mode, carefully staying outside my client’s energy field. I would simply
acknowledge her presence and make sure she was receiving exactly what I was sending out.
I realized what she saw and felt depended upon how strong and pure my connection with
Spirit was. In this mode, I would transport her energetically into the realm of guides, sages, and
masters where the vibrations were beyond human conditioning and the life force and intelligence
were in abundance. In this zone, we would anchor ourselves and leap into the unknown to create
manifestations. Little would my client know, there were more than just the two of us present for
these sessions. Occasionally, there were times when I would actually repeat a thought or even
As the years passed, her visits became fewer and farther apart until they finally stopped
It was two-thirty in the morning and I sat in deep silence, with my feet on the chaise
lounge, balancing my laptop on my thighs. I loved late night writing; my inspiration would peak
as the darkness grew. Moments would melt into nothingness; then a tickling, a nudging, and
then out of a silent rising, like water from a fountain, the blank space would become showered
with letters, words, phrases, and then sentences. Soon the pages would be filled with this
This night was different. At one o’clock, I awakened suddenly and immediately felt the
flow of Spirit. Not wanting to disturb Inder, I rose silently and slipped out of the bedroom.
Perching myself on the chaise lounge, I was in the flow, deeply connected and ready to write.
A sudden stop. I felt someone… or something. Peering out the window, I searched the
darkness for any movement. The eight thirty-foot tall elm trees in the front garden were
motionless. Across the street, a hundred feet away stood the street lamp, casting its dim circle of
illumination; no movement there either. I shifted my gaze back inward and it was then that I
noticed a hint of light. There was Monica perched comfortably on sofa chair in my living room.
“Greetings, Ruby, I am back,” she began, her facing shining with light.
“Well, I haven’t seen you since so long,” I welcomed her with a smile. “Where have you
A mysterious smile lit her face. “Ruby, I am back,” she said. “I mean..in a body. I am
born again.”
I was startled, but she read my mind and proceeded to address every question before I
could ask it. “Remember the couple you recently worked with in Calgary? Don and Julia?
Well, they are my parents; I mean, I am their daughter,” she explained. “Their meeting you was
“I know it’s hard to grasp. Your work with past lives and reincarnated Souls has given
you direct experience of reincarnation, but this is a bit different. You got to know me in the
physical, then watched me pass over. Through my visits, you even watched me live in the subtle
realm. Now, you will see me again in the physical; life, death, and now life again. You will see
“Soon you will receive the answers to every question you’ve ever had. Your life’s work
has culminated into a beautiful truth and you have the rare opportunity to witness eternity. My
dear friend, you are in for a big surprise… but first, you must call Don and Julia.”
“You’ve got to be crazy,” I gasped! I hardly know these people and I would not know
what to tell them! I didn’t even know if they believed in all this. How the hell was I supposed to
“Look Monica,” I continued, “much as I love this work, I’m not going to stick my neck
out here. I don’t want to become stressed by the burden of proof. Please understand.” I finished
up.
“Oh, but you already are,” Monica insisted in her quiet way.
I took a moment to breathe and consider, and found I was ready to make a deal.
“Okay,” I relented, “if this is all true and you truly are their daughter, then let the parents
call me two months from today and request that I work with their daughter. If this happens, then
I will believe everything you are telling me. And then I will do everything you are asking me to
do.”
Monica reluctantly accepted the deal. I returned to my writing, and several hours later I
“Dear Don,” I wrote, “Do you have a daughter, and if so, how old is she?”
Don’s reply was prompt. “Yes, I have one daughter. Melissa is seven years old. Why do you
ask?”
“Never mind, it’s not important for now,” I replied, and quickly hit “send.”
I put the situation on hold because I did not know how to deal with it. Even though
Monica had only given me information and I did not actually need to do anything with it, I felt
the responsibility to handle it with care and attention. Monica was a responsible Soul with a lot
of integrity, and I had no reason to doubt her word. Although I wanted to be part of her truth and
honour her, I felt sure that now was simply not the time. I put the thought away, not wanting to
Ten years after her passing, I was once again thinking of Monica. During her life she had
created the financial resources and social structure to fulfill her Soul Promise. But by the time
she had remembered and heard the voice of her soul, she was on her deathbed. Once conscious
of her promise, she had found peace. Although she desperately wanted a miracle to give her time
There was good reason for me being with Monica in her last moments. I began asking
questions, the answers to which would enhance my personal journey. Why can’t we remember
the promise or commitment we made as Soul to ourselves and others? Why do we forget who
we are and our reason for being here? Why did Monica not recall her promise until a few hours
I had spent many years seeking fulfillment. Even my quest for freedom was born of the
need to feel fulfilled. I had looked for answers in every corner I could find. The problem was
nothing seemed to stick for very long. I would go to a particular seminar, gain a bit of insight,
and be influenced in one way. Then, at the next workshop I would be exposed to a different
method and lean a different way. Often, the new concepts and methods clashed with the old
I also found myself being caught in waves of traditional religion, metaphysical science,
and new age philosophy. I paid attention to every practice and tried to find to the meaning
behind the words and language. Everything was usually fine at the beginning but as I got deeper
into the philosophy, I would become intense, heavy, and burdened and would stop relating to it.
Eventually, I realized that reading about philosophies and doctrines was not my way. I had no
appetite for someone else’s opinions or realizations. I would have to create my own way.
After I was introduced to the power of intention as a tool to manifest desire, I quickly
learned the technique and went crazy. There was nothing I could not manifest, or so I believed.
I did this for quite a while until I met the swami in India. I remembered again his words, “Can
you manifest peace and fulfillment?” he had asked. “Can you materialize consciousness? Can
you manifest yourself? The fact that you are still seeking tells me you have not yet found
“You are like a kid in a candy store trying to buy everything you see. What are you
going to do with everything you collect? Collecting information and even knowledge is useless
He was right. I had no need to collect more techniques or more ways to become who I
wanted to be. His words just confirmed my inner feeling; I had to stop, but how? Once I had the
ball rolling, not even I could stop the momentum. One part of me felt like a house on fire and
the other part had just become aware of the raging fire and the destruction being caused by the
burn. And between them both was another Ruby, who simply witnessed everything.
I had become accustomed to the struggle; in fact, I did not know how to be any other
way. I did not even know what I truly needed to manifest. Everything I supposedly needed was
becoming superfluous. I had begun using the power of my intention to manifest the silliest little
things that had absolutely no relevance to my current situation, or to my purpose. It had become
a big joke. I would place intent to get a nearby parking stall and was thrilled each time I got it.
But, believe me, it would have been much better for my health if I had walked the extra block. I
had many friends who were also using this tool but few of them looked content. Even fewer had
Beyond the superfluous things, I also had the deep desire to know myself. I had yet to
meet a master who could tell me about myself as Soul or my history. No one seemed to know
me; those who attempted would see only the superficial; they would see my persona and not me.
And like them, I too was fixated on the persona. I wanted to change many things including
getting a new body but could not. Only later did I realize my nature and temperament were
In India, being polite and respectful meant not to question. We, especially the women,
had to be tolerant and subservient. Maturity was equated with your level of sacrifice which
meant putting all others ahead of yourself. Sacrificing oneself and martyrdom created social
value. Anyone who gave up their dreams for the joy and happiness of others was considered
But I was different. I wanted to know God and I wanted to know myself. I wanted to
know why I had taken birth, what I needed to do, and what surrender really meant. I wondered if
the will of the majority was the will of God. If that were true, then I might as well be dead.
My religious upbringing had delivered mixed messages. I was taught to pray and ask for
anything and everything I wanted. At the same time, I was taught that asking for too much was
greedy and selfish. Many of my desires were externally driven and as I tried to keep up with
social trends, my priorities became confused. My life became full of things and people in which
I had little interest. I often forgot what I had asked for. Before one thing had manifested, I
they could open their minds to nothing else. I’m sure many of us manifested our intent but I’m
However, while I was so busy asking and intending what I desired, I paid no attention to
the underlying spiritual principles. Many teachers and healers were offering different methods
for working with intention and it took me a while to figure out that something was missing in the
process. Eventually, I became aware that I was choosing from my ego rather than from my
spiritual intelligence, without the bigger picture, I was likely wasting my time and energy.
I also began to realize I needed to chart my own path. I recalled Sri Aurobindo’s words,
“Do not step into my shoes because they will not fit you. Do not follow my footprints for they
lead to my destination, not yours. Just meet me in spirit and you will be inspired.” Now, years
after meeting Sri Aurobindo in spirit, I felt his presence; even though our paths were different,
we both had what it took which was the inspiration to follow our dream. A few nights later the
words “beyond personal intention” came to me. When the air crackled with electricity, I knew I
was on to something.
Somewhere afar, yet within, I could hear the ringing of temple bells. I recognized this
sound; it was time for another lesson and awakening. Sitting up in bed, I stopped all thinking,
lowering my eyelids to reduce external stimuli so I would miss nothing. For a few seconds there
was dead silence and then the vision opened up. I began to re-experience an event that had
It was late at night and Sunny as usual insisted I tell him a Soul story, of course, his own.
Within my group of friends and family I was known for this; someone was always searching
deeper into themselves. I would dig deep into their Soul records to pick up the priceless gifts,
and then surprise or even shock them beyond their imagination. These gifts gave people insight
into themselves, helped them to become more aware, and somehow the “on the spot delivery”
resulted in spontaneous breakthroughs. Being part of their joy provided enough gratification for
All these years later, this particular vision came with a slightly different perspective. “Dig
deep, and tell me something really magical,” Sunny had cajoled. He loved to receive messages
“Okay,” I said, wasting no time, and like a big fish I dove to the bottom of the deep, dark
“Sunny! I think I just hit on something!” I was jolted into a sitting position. “You won’t
believe this. Sunny, I am with a group of Fakirs15 who claim you belong to their Soul family.
This group of Souls has been in existence since at least the fourth or fifth century. They are
worldly detached but divinely attached. Some of the Fakirs were kings, mystics, poets, and artists
who gave up worldly possessions and lived in the detached state. Living and being One with
everything was their way; their Oneness was contagious, as were their stories. Without teaching
15
fakir or faqir is a Sufi, especially one who performs feats of endurance or apparent magic. In English, the term is
often used to refer to Hindu ascetics (e.g., sadhus, gurus, swamis, and yogis) as well as Sufi mystics. From
Wikepedia
or preaching, they awakened the feeling of love and compassion in others and this subtle
I stopped speaking when an elder Fakir entered the vision and began giving me other
information. What I was being told was so exciting I wanted to jump out of my skin! I was
dying to share this information with Sunny but first I needed to verify something.
“Sunny, before your birth, did your grandmother go on a holy pilgrimage and have
special prayers conducted so her only child, your mother, would be blessed with a son? And this
male child would be a pure Soul, born with the intention to carry forward her dream and the
dream of many others? And this dream was no ordinary dream; for a one-woman show, she
“Yes!” he replied, startled. “My grandmother is a very ambitious woman. Yes, I am told
she conducted several rituals and prayers before my mother conceived. Her intention was to
attract a pure Soul who could be a strong positive influence. I think my grandmother had zero
tolerance for weakness, she wanted me under her wings and had high expectations of me. But
where are you heading with this? What else is the Fakir saying?”
“Okay, this confirms your Soul origin. By the way, he says you are a pure Soul because
you have no karmic conditioning. Being a Fakir, you have lived Oneness, and that means One
with everything, of course, including God within. He also tells me you are an answer to your
grandmother’s prayers and in this incarnation you will do exactly what has been intended for
“What?” demanded Inder. “Are you saying I have no free will? That I’m a puppet of
“No, no!” I assured him quickly. “You are just unaware of who you are and although this
information matches your thinking, desires, and lifestyle, you are not yet able to see your reality
clearly. That’s only because until now, you have been focussed externally, rather than inwardly.
Religion, you see, connects us to the inner dimensions, but when we use religion to magnify just
the outer life without the inner focus, we lose our real identity and perspective. You too Sunny,
have lost the remembrance, so even though you have the mind-set of a Fakir, which is pretty
evident from your lifestyle and your life, you don’t have conscious memory of your origin and
purpose. It is possible for one to live their purpose without conscious memory, but it is difficult.
When conscious memory is lost, then a loss of identity may also occur and the result can be a
loss of direction and life path itself. Also, there is a qualitative difference in living with
“This may be true in your case, because I find that you are still chasing dreams, whereas
if in fact you are a Fakir, then dreams should be chasing you. The state of Oneness you lived
centuries ago should still be working for you; once a Fakir, always a Fakir. With that as your
true inner state, you will live this life calling; and that is the difference. These intentions were
set in motion centuries ago, and not just by you personally but along with many others.” There
“Are you saying I have no independent presence?” Inder asked. “That I’m bound for
“That question I will leave to you to answer, after you have consciously experienced the
inner states. But first tell me, what is your deepest desire?” I was still on a fact-finding mission.
“Why?” I intercepted.
“I want to develop hospitals and schools for the poor. I want to develop farmland and
start a co-operative of sorts, where farmers can cultivate the land and share the proceeds equally.
“What will you do with all the money you make from your ventures and assets you
“Helping others is my personal dream, so my assets will be utilized for such causes.”
“I will pay for their education and development like I would for others.”
Seeing clearly that I was speaking with a Fakir; someone with no separation, I made my
final pitch. “What will it take to accomplish your dreams? Do you have any training or skills to
“None,” he admitted, “as a matter of fact I don’t need any. None of this is rocket science.
“Do you know anything about Fakirs and their gifts?” I asked.
“A little, not much, just that they carry the God presence within and are blessed to bless.
I have read that kings and enlightened masters alike seek their blessing for fulfillment of their
desired purposes. The strongest Soul can suffer when in physical incarnation. But tell me more
“Fakirs aren’t usually known to pray, meditate, or seek. They have transcended to states
beyond the separation. Being one, they enjoy and celebrate everything. Their music and singing
touches Soul and awakens the true identity in others. Their presence is enough to influence
positive changes. They live ordinary lives extraordinarily. What is magic and wonder to us is
natural to them. They are not bound by their physicality; they can be anywhere, everywhere, yet
nowhere. They can appear in any form, at any time. And this is not because of any skill or
Inder caught on quickly, “Are you saying I have all theses gifts that I’m not aware of?”
“Yes, I believe so,” I said quietly. “You know, Sunny, if we printed your picture in the
newspaper, many people would call to say you have helped them somehow, somewhere. You
have heard how angels and spiritual entities appear and disappear in times of pain, shock and
suffering, and how they help and support humanity when in need? Well, just like that, you too
have been helping others in need, especially around your late teens.” I could see his skepticism
“Okay, fine,” I said resigned. “Don’t believe me, but soon you will have proof of every
word I have spoken.” So, despite wanting to continue, I dropped the conversation. Silently, I
It was only a few weeks later while we were sitting with a friend, Dr. Chadda, in his
“Ruby, can you please help a friend of mine? It will have to be on the phone as she lives
in Mumbai. She is a famous film actress but is in deep despair right now.” Without waiting for
my answer, he dialed her number in Mumbai, spoke a few words to her, and handed me the
phone.
“Hello Ruby,” I heard a soft and tired voice at the other end. “I am Priya, Priya
“Priya, the famous actress from the movie Haqeekat?” I said with surprise. Her familiar
face flashed across my mind, and Inder too looked surprised. Apparently, she was one of his
favourites.
“Ruby,” she continued, “I must tell you I am broke and have no money to pay for your
services. I have suffered huge losses and the only asset I have is tied up in a legal battle. You
see, Chetan died suddenly. My assets were all tied up with his, and his sons from his estranged
marriage grabbed what they could leaving me nothing. He did not want me to work with other
producers or directors so I had no independent income. The only thing I have is this small
apartment and a house on Juhu Beach and that too is held jointly with his two sons. The house is
worth a lot but they won’t allow me to sell it. You see, they don’t need the money as I do.
Moreover, they are very nasty to me and really don’t want to share this asset with me. They
hope I will just go away. I am suffering now from depression and anxiety and have no money,
even for food.” In her monotonous tone, Priya disclosed other details of her sad saga and her
life.
I was shocked. It was hard to imagine that Priya, once a famous film actress, a partner in
of most famous actor and legend, Dev Anand, was broke and penniless. There was little I could
do but give Priya a healing vision. “Priya, I will pray that you be in comfort.”
“No plans right now, but I will let you know if things change,” I promised as we hung up.
invited me and Inder to his house in Mumbai. When Inder quickly called Priya with the news,
“Thank God, my prayers are answered,” she cried. “I don’t have a car so you will have
to take a taxi and I’m sorry, I don’t have even taxi fare to offer to you.”
I assured Priya my visit would cost her nothing. During the trip, Inder told me that his
father, Ranjit Singh, a retired Colonel, was also a huge fan of Priya’s. In fact, in 1963 he was a
Major in charge of his unit in Kashmir, at the time Priya and her co-star, Dharmendra(also a
famous film actor) had filmed Haqeekat. And just to sweeten the story, Inder told me that
Dharmendra’s character in the film was called Major Ranjit Singh - after his father! His father
had displayed photographs taken with Priya in his office for a long time, a reminder of his
cherished moments.
minutes she had told us the full story of her situation. As she spoke, I noticed her gaze was
hypnotically drawn to Inder. I was surprised as Dr. Chadda had told me Priya was a shy person.
In a few words, she told me she wanted to act again, to regain her status in the film
“So be it,” I said. “Let us first meditate together and see what God has in store for you.”
So, we sat down on the floor, and after twenty minutes I opened my eyes and felt a strong
energy link between Priya and Inder. I ended the meditation with a prayer, but Priya kept her
eyes closed. Ten minutes later she raised her eyelids and stared at Sunny. Not wanting to disturb
“Sunny, you have returned,” she said softly but clearly. “You are the young Fakir who
came to me in my vision eighteen years ago! At that time, I knew you would return and I would
recognize you.” Priya’s gaze was still locked with Inder, and she shared her vision with us.
“It was about eighteen years ago. I was at the height of my career when I had a visitation.
It was early morning and even though it was a vision, I was awake and it was real. In my vision,
the doorbell rang and my mother answered the door to greet two Fakirs, one old and one in his
late teens. The old Fakir was blind and held in his hands a bowl of jewels- emeralds, rubies, and
sapphires, which he handed to my mother saying, ‘This is for Priya. It is a blessing and a gift she
will need.’ My mother stepped back, and not wanting to accept the gift, she said, ‘Fakir Baba,
my daughter is rich and famous and has everything she will ever need. She does not need this
gift.’ And with this, she began to close the door on the Fakirs. Just then I stepped forward to the
threshold, but the elder Fakir stepped backward. The young Fakir looked into my eyes and said,
‘You have made Fakir Baba angry; you should not have refused the gifts. One day you will be in
As Priya described this vision, her body vibrated with tremors. Tears rolled down her
face as she said to Inder, “I did not see the elder Fakir as clearly as I saw the young one. I told
my mother of the vision, and said I might not recognize the elder Fakir but I will certainly
recognize the young one. I know his eyes. And I also know he will return.”
“Each day for five years I waited, hoping the young Fakir would return. I know it was
not just a vision. This actually happened. I blamed my mother for her arrogance in not
accepting the gift, even though it happened in my vision. And then as Ruby guided us into
meditation just now, it all came back. I recognize your eyes. Now that you are back, I know
“Priya, what colour of robes was the young Fakir wearing?” asked Inder gently.
“No, they were grey,” corrected Inder in the timeless space that had opened between
them.
“Yes I am sorry, the elder Fakir wore black and you were in grey,” she said softly.
It is almost impossible to capture such moments with words, however, these rare and
exquisite occurrences open the door to the unknown. Here, time stands still and one glimpse is
enough to generate faith for several lifetimes. Inder wept. And he knew that what Priya
After that, Priya showed us her Juhu Beach house. “This is where I spend every
evening. It is my way of being present until we can sell the house. Chetan’s sons come here
“They won’t,” she answered. “They don’t want to share it with me at all.”
“Priya, I will help you get the house sold without any conflict and without lawyers. I
promise you will get your share, but you must promise me you will not return to this property
“How can it settle with those two devils if they refuse to acknowledge my share? I know
“Priya, the conflict exists in the mind, not in Spirit. Let me do what I am gifted to do. I
promise you will receive your share, all within two months. But I cannot guarantee your safety
if you are present here in this house. There is danger here, you cannot trust anyone here.
And so Priya promised she would not enter the house until I had completed my work. We
exchanged phone numbers and as we climbed into the taxi, she gave Inder a tight hug saying,
During the ride back to town we said nothing until I broke the silence. “I see the writing
“I just had a vision. I saw a newspaper article that read: ‘FAMOUS ACTRESS PRIYA
RAJVANSH FOUND DEAD.’ Her lifeless body lay on the floor of her Juhu Beach house; she
Inder was shocked, “How can you let this happen? You promised her safety. What good
“Sunny, I do not have the power to alter the script. The outcome could be changed by her
not returning to the house. Taking a new path, which better suits her Soul script could result in a
different outcome. But I have no control if she follows the old path which leads to imminent
destruction. The best I could do was be truthful and warn her, which I did. However, I will pray
Two weeks later, while en route from India to London, we stopped in Dubai for
refuelling. In the transit lounge, Inder found a local newspaper which he brought back on the
plane. At thirty five thousand feet in the air, he flipped the pages reading news headlines.
With my eyes closed and trying to relax, I said, “Sunny, flip to the last page and look at
the upper right side.” He turned to the page in question and exclaimed, “Oh God! It happened.
Priya is dead!” On the upper right side, in big, bold letters it read, “FAMOUS INDIAN
ACTRESS PRIYA RAJVANSH MURDERED.” It also mentioned that her two stepsons were
Upon our return to Canada, we called Dr. Chadha who was still in shock. “Ruby had
warned her not to return to the house but Priya did not listen,” Inder reported sadly.
“Inder,” said Dr. Chadha, “she tried desperately to get hold of you the day she was
murdered. She said she was nervous and had to talk to you about something. She called you at
The story did not end there as Priya did show up later, but in spirit, and still she comes as
I have found no better way to express truth than through the actual stories that Souls
leave behind as legacies. What would we all be without our story; and a story without a past
cannot have a future. A life once lived is usually forgotten, but for me no story is too old or
belongs only in the past. As long as Spirit is alive, there will be Souls and their stories. We wear
No revelation, big or small, can reveal the entire truth; even the genius mind does not
have the ability to comprehend everything. The seer can only see what he sees; there is always
more when it comes to Spirit and Soul. Inder got a glimpse and some proof of his spiritual
lineage with his interaction with Priya, while she found her Fakir, and I am sure their saga will
continue. And I, the only known witness to it all, received more confirmation that I should keep
following my path and live as the Fakirs’ do, with Oneness. Only then will I have the gift to
In the absence of the conscious connection, our intentions seems erratic and without
meaningful purpose. I don’t think it’s realistic to expect the inner level of awareness from
everyone, but what can be expected is the knowing that behind our intentions is a fine tapestry
woven with colours and designs from earth to sky and everything in between. Some colours and
designs we may remember and most not; the ones we remember are the ones we get attached to.
The others we simply forget. Attachment, as pleasing as it seems, is the reason for the
value. It offered me a ladder, an opportunity to climb higher and reach the top. One conscious
desire could generate enough life force to enlighten humanity, just as one nuclear bomb can
From the time I was a young girl, I was filled with desires. I felt special and I wanted to
do something original. I yearned to have an extraordinary life. I wanted the power and
intelligence to create a way of being, where each person could live off their genius and their
gifts. I wanted to create a world of healthy thinkers. I wanted everything and everyone to be
All these desires were considered to be egocentric and as a young girl they made me look
like a dreamer. But after my spiritual awakening in 1992, I realized there was more to
everything that I was aware of. My desires were actually clues; I was being given the
opportunity to design my destiny and fulfill all my dreams from a Soul perspective. I also
realized I could achieve fulfillment spontaneously by being a certain way, rather than wanting
My friend NKO once remarked, “Ruby was not born; you have created her of your free
will.” At the time, I did not understand what he meant. One day over drinks, we began
discussing astrology and I asked him, “NKO, tell me about the planetary influences on us.” In
response, he told me to close my eyes and experience the planets for myself.
I closed my eyes and before I knew it, I had jumped into the galaxy and was seeing
myself as a living constellation within a universe of stars and planets. Some planets were more
forceful than others and seemed to influence the smaller ones. While many planets were forced
into certain movements, others moved in their own eccentric patterns. I saw that each planet and
constellation had its own tune or vibration, and together they created a symphony that was
I realized that as individuals we have choice in how we respond to the vibrations of the
universe. Our vibrations may be influenced and we may be forced to move in a certain direction,
but how we move is our own choice. In this sense, we are never victims. We can always choose
our dance, whether quickstep, jive, or salsa. And while each dance has certain structure and
rules, we choose to perform it our own way. This is the essence of free will and with it comes
responsibility. Only then did I realize what my friend had meant. My dance step had not been
This is when I became interested in getting to know the dreamer. I also wanted to reach
out and share what I was learning with others. I had no idea a new way was about to open up –
Chapter Thirteen
The Radio Interview
In October 2006, I received an invitation to do a live interview on AM 680 CJOB
Winnipeg. Radio is a fun way to reach people, I thought, as I accepted the invitation. When I
arrived at the studio that morning, my host Adrienne Batra hit a cord in me immediately with her
mischievous smile. I was a bit nervous but also very excited, and it took only a few minutes for
Adrienne’s casual playfulness to warm me for the interview. Clearly in her comfort zone, her
sparkling brown eyes were ready for excitement. With flair and attitude she introduced me to the
world of radio.
“It’s an effortless way to reach people,” she said with professional flamboyance. I was
attracted to her style, as she pushed her long dark hair off her face in one sweep, adjusted her
“We’re on in ten seconds,” she said, giving me the heads up. Switching gears
effortlessly, she proceeded to announce the results of a football game. Her words, voice, and
tone created a synergetic flow and before I knew it, I was on the energy roll with her as within
seconds, she became part of a much larger world. Gently, she helped me step into the
spontaneity and enter a conversation that was light yet deep. Thus inspired, I fell in love with
radio like a new toy. The room was filled with high energy and a creative presence and I was
“My guest today is Ruby Bedi, who has been called a modern day oracle.” With these
words, Adrienne welcomed me onto her show. Fascinated, I felt there was just something in the
way she pronounced my name. It felt like a reminder of sorts, but I put the thought on hold, and
for the next ten minutes became fully engaged in the conversation with my host. I was really
“I love this!” I said. “It will be perfect for me.” Stepping into the future, I instantly
“Yes!” Adrienne finished the thought for me, and both of us broke into a big enthusiastic
smile. Then she was on again, seducing the listeners (including me) with her words, presence,
and style. The room was certainly small for a big personality like hers.
“Ruby Bedi,” she said again, and again I felt it - this odd, distinct feeling of reminder. It
felt like I was being called. I also realized there was some good reason for me being here on the
air with her. With no time to mull over it, I made a mental note to later check my inner mailbox
There was a presence in the room indicating there were more than just two of us here.
When I looked at Adrienne, she now seemed even more familiar. I knew her from somewhere
and there was more to this than what I was remembering. I knew she had done much more than
just announce my name; she had introduced the person who Ruby Bedi was meant to be. But we
were on air again and there was no time to ponder this as we discussed spirituality, relationships,
All too soon we were done, but my mind was occupied with the deep response that
hearing her speak my own name had triggered. I made a new connection with the name.
Ecstatic, for the first time I felt pride in being Ruby Bedi. It would allow me to express the
Later I could not stop thinking about Adrienne; I seemed to be trapped in her energy
field. I tried to make sense of it but soon decided to simply enjoy the fun-loving presence I was
feeling. At bedtime, I told Inder about this odd connection to Adrienne. I even tried to say my
name “Ruby Bedi” the same way she had said it. Inwardly, I kept repeating my name like a
mantra.
My Father’s Visit
It was only when I was ready to fall asleep that I noticed a deep sadness growing within
till it became a gnawing ache in my Soul. I burst into tears as I shared my feelings with Inder,
“My father is here,” I whispered, as I wept profusely. “He too has tears in his eyes. He is
saying he is proud of me and today he knows that spirituality is no longer a concept for me. It
has value and purpose. I was born to live it and share it with others. He says I will connect with
others and share my knowledge through the medium of radio and television.” Just then, my
I saw myself talking to an elderly woman who was suffering from some chronic disease
and unable to move around much. Her husband, her only caregiver, had died suddenly from a
heart attack. She could feel her husband but she was unable to see him. She was gripped by
panic and fear and was one of the callers on a radio talk show. I could feel my heart constricting
as I began bringing messages from her husband on the other side. He was in as much pain and
fear as she. I was trying to bring peace to them both and at the same time praying silently to God
to step in quickly and take over. The wife’s sobbing was ripping me apart. Her pain was waking
me up from inertia and lethargy, compelling me to become involved. I was left with no choice
This vision dissolved any guards I had built around myself. I was pain-struck, but unlike
my own personal pain, here I could do something to help. I felt no fear of taking on someone
else’s karma or energy; rather, it was meaningful to become involved. I knew my role. The
greater purpose of my work was to bring peace to those who were suffering. I might not be able
to change their destiny, but I could follow my own destined path, helping however I could.
I must give my fullest here, I thought. The thought of being present for someone else in
pain was humbling and I remembered the times in my work when I was doing just that. But
somewhere along the line I had become distant and detached myself from the work; it happened
when I did not get the results I wanted. But now, I let go of the outcome and was once again
I decided to take on whatever God’s plan was for me; I think I was being a bit self-
serving. Yes, God had to be a partner in this and I made sure I included all three in the healing
Oooooh! Breathing deeply, I stretched out - giving my heart more space. I could feel the
opening and fresh air in my lungs and after a time, there was a gentle mellowness in me. I guess
this is what acceptance does. By living out my purpose, even through a vision, I had earned
grace. Feeling empowered, I made a decision to handle these responsibilities with pride and
spiritual poise. Ready to make amendments to my life plan, I made a personal commitment that
my heart would no longer ache for personal reasons. Instead, my own heartache would be the
message that someone, somewhere, was waiting for me to reach out and ease their pain, and
My father was a witness to my promise. As my pain lessened, I reached out and held
onto him. I let go of the regret and pain I had felt from not being close to him. Just before he
left, he whispered, “I have never prayed for anything, not because I was not a believer, but
because I believed God had given me everything I needed to create the best life possible. This
knowing gave me the courage and confidence to work hard to accomplish a life of purpose and
integrity. But today I will pray that you accomplish the life of your purpose. You will need the
wisdom and intelligence to conquer personal temptations and become part of the bigger world.
You are moving from the “I” into the “All Space”. You have accomplished the first part of your
Soul’s promise which was to be conscious of what you are. You have gone beyond the
personality and connected with your Soul individuality and recognized your truth. The solo
journey is now complete. Now it is time to fulfill the second part of your promise which is to
rise above your personal beliefs and be open to a state where all beings meet on common
ground.”
Immediately, I thought of a garden with many flowers including roses with thorns and a
dry, prickly cactus. I knew what he meant, a place where all things were set in their mould but
were part of one landscape, where individual actions translate into collective consequences. A
transcended into a way of being, and the single entity has melted into the larger cosmic pool. I
realized he was talking about intelligence and not just a way of being.
To meet his vision, I would have to rise above “my space”, become part of the subtle
realm, then descend into the collective space from the personal one. Here, I would be part of the
“All Space”, a community comprised of people, thoughts, and things. The fusion of all things
would create balance between the old and new, greater and smaller, the subtle and the manifest.
To be part of the integration and prepare the form for mass individualization would be the work
for many. And it was for this materialization of intelligence that I would offer my services.
Wow! It brought forth joy to know that my inner being was about to tumble and flow
into the mass consciousness. I would not have to reinvent myself but rather, I would absorb the
effects of mass consciousness through my being by being conscious. I was the vessel of
“You have everything you need to create wealth, knowledge, and abundance,” my father
said softly. “My dear child! This test is not for the poor but for the rich. Only when we have
knowledge can we see that we have choices. Your heart may be pure, and you may be generous,
but unless you move into the “All Space” with full awareness, you will not be in peace. You
must fulfill your Soul obligations to be in peace, and completion of a long-standing promise will
With this message, my father left me with an open-ended possibility to create the life I
wanted to live. I knew it was up to me to choose what I wanted to experience. My father was a
wise man; he inspired rather than guided me. He did not want to rob me of the pleasure of a
direct experience, nor did he want me to follow. He knew I was a leader and that my self-
This was so exciting for me. While my father was in the physical I was not able to be
close to him. I had yearned for him and his coming to me at this time awakened my commitment,
responsibility, and promise to myself. Suddenly the stars lined up and all the dots connected.
His words inspired me to examine myself. I felt ready for take-off but I also knew I had become
a bit hardened. My beliefs about who I “should be” were contradictory to who I was and that
had given me a thick, crusty shell. Holding on to beliefs and using them to protect and defend
my identity had cocooned me into a cynical and bittersweet person. Then my father put one
hand on my forehead as if to stop me from thinking, and the other on my heart, and as he did I
“Each time your heart misses a beat, know that you have missed an opportunity to live to
your fullest. Meditate upon your name,” he instructed, “and you will remember your promise.”
He left me with a new strength, clarity, and commitment to discover my Soul Promise in its
Many had called my name but it was Adrienne who had pulled the trigger when she
announced me. She was so herself. Her flirtatious sensuality had seduced me into desiring
tantalizingly beautiful as hers. My sensual sexuality was for a reason. I wanted to grab life by
its tail and paint the world canvas with the colours of my Soul. I wanted to live the entire realm
of spirituality, with hidden meanings and concealed purposes, with awakened intelligence. My
I wanted to honour womanhood with dignity and love, and to commit to those who
wanted to rise above the struggle and live in harmony and strength. I wanted to restring the
pearls of wisdom and ancient knowledge with a new and innovative approach. I thought of the
lotus, a flower that blossoms in the midst of filth and murky waters. “Why can’t I be the lotus
and arise from within the polluted environment and external conditioning?” The thought of
being out there with nothing holding me back generated a new power in me. I found myself
“Mom, we must check the Kabbalah meaning for your name,” my daughter Sona
suggested, when I told her about my father’s instruction to ‘meditate upon your name’. She then
sent out a request with my name and birthdate. In twenty-four hours, we received the shorter
version of the meaning and a few days later a friend of hers, Amy, emailed me the insight of my
“The power of death is not limited to the physical body. The end of friendship, the failure
of a business, or the dissolution of a marriage are all expressions of death. When good things
Insight: Make no mistake- The one Angel of Death is the cause whenever good things of
any kind come to an end. By attacking at the most fundamental level, we avert many of the
fatalities that strike us. These letters are powerful weapons for making the attack. With each set
of eyes that falls upon this Name, the power of the Angel of Death is weakened throughout the
world until ultimately, the “death of death” takes place and immortality reigns.” 16
I was stunned. Shooting energy in my spine, chills, and goose bumps were all
confirmation of the rising spirit. Today, I had proof I was a conscious act of the universe with a
deliberate desire, specific focus, and a non-confining intelligence. My name was not just a
name; it was an identity for a Soul with a plan, a purpose, and responsibility to fulfill the
outstanding promise of being Ruby Bedi. There was no one else out there with this name and
destiny. There were no footprints I could follow and this brought some fear, but also a sense of
freedom.
live my purpose. The meaning and insight of my name fit my work purpose to a tee. That is
exactly what I helped my clients with. They came to me when they were sick, tired, and
confused. Broken promises were a big part of the work. With ease, I helped people through
child custody battles, business upsets, divorces, and other marital and financial problems.
Things got better after their session, and whatever I said seemed to have a deeper meaning and
purposefulness in my clients’ lives. They were touched and comforted, finding new ways to live
For all this to happen there had to be some “X” factor working behind the scenes. God
and the universe were on our side, supporting our intentions. Beyond my own consciousness
was a force backing up every action, thought, word, and intention. Perhaps it was a blessing or
just plain, simple, good karma. Knowing the meaning of my name confirmed my thoughts, gave
me confidence and courage, and brought me peace. I felt responsible to live up to my name at
any cost and a greater part of me was now committed to the welfare of others. This all created a
spontaneous shift; within seconds, I moved from simple growth and development to a greater
maturity.
This profound revelation brought new insights and my inner landscape began to change.
There was a new relatedness to everything, even my relationship with God. I could see what was
of me and what was of God. I could experience God in all things, both big and small. This new,
greater perspective included awareness of me, my environment, and the “X” factor, everything
beyond. Now more aware of my thoughts, I worked to match the intensity of my thought with
appropriate action. .
vibration, there was synchronicity and unaccustomed transparency. I was reminded that the best
way to keep the secret was to share it and I did just that. I watched others easily open up and the
landscape of relationships was changing with a new, higher level of attunement. Aware of a new
collective intelligence within, I began to feel the same responsibility and love for others as I felt
for myself. But all this was born of many events and not just the result of a split-second
Because of my past, I often wondered what I did to deserve this gift. I had separated
myself from the rules and laws of others and created my own set of principles, custom-made for
me. In being critical of myself and others, I had violated the most fundamental laws of nature.
Causing harm was not my intention, but I knew I had the potential to be more and criticism was
my way of not settling for less. I had kept secrets and even when given the opportunity to be
truthful, I wasn’t. Not yet matured in self-belief, I was not ready to risk premature exposure.
I realized I did not want to be like others; in trying to do so, I had almost lost my
authenticity. Without maturity, there were many things I did not understand which left me more
negative than positive. I had subjected myself to hurt, anger, depression, and disease. By self
inflicting pain and suffering, we punish ourselves for not living up to our fullest ability.
“Dear God: Let no day pass with me not knowing who I am.”
To me the fear of losing my Soul memory was far greater than the fear of losing my life.
It would be easier to die than to not know who I am. All this could have been avoided if only I’d
had someone like me to shed light upon my identity as Soul. This gave birth to a desire to bring
awareness and enlightenment, and the gift of seeing and being. This would be my unique gift to
I saw a tiger roaring in a cage. It wanted out. It was ready to attack. First, I was afraid
of the ferocious animal and then I felt pity for it. But even though I was still fearful, I put his
freedom before my fear so I opened the gate and let the tiger out. It jumped on me and pinned
me down. I was on my back and looking into its eyes but this time without fear. It kept roaring
as if trying to intimidate me. I did not distract it but rather I held my gaze and watched until it
exhausted its outburst. With his energy now diffused, he sat down beside me like an old friend.
As I pet him lightly on the head, we gazed into each other’s eyes exchanging first passion, then
compassion. Then we both closed our eyes and disappeared into our own worlds.
This brought me to another realization that my Soul, like the tiger was trapped in a cage.
Until I consciously let go of fear and opened the cage, the anger I had (that the tiger displayed)
was my unrecognized and unutilized power. Not being aware had resulted in internal anger and
violence. The moment I put the tiger first, I put Soul first and when I released the beast it was
the letting go. When I did not react and allowed it to simply release its frustration, it surrendered
It was the same when I consciously decided to connect with myself as Soul, and let my
roaring personality out. Through my different personas, I had witnessed its frustration. As I
became aware of the personas, I looked right into them without reaction or judgement, they
started to drop and melt into the Soul. The tiger sitting next to me indicated integration and
harmony between Soul and my animal instincts. I was in balance and for the first time
unashamed of my beastly nature. It had a place and a role in my life. The new balance and the
When I awoke, I felt I had been in the company of my friends, the special group of Souls.
These Souls were redefining the collective intelligence for a new breakthrough. A fulfilling life
with force- to counter the negative influences of greed and exploitation, energy and intelligence-
to unify the diverse forces, and power and will- to enforce a self governing ethics within
societies, communities, and governing bodies. There would be special focus on the corporate
bodies to lift their purpose from personal gain and social recognition to serve as instruments for
bettering the human condition. I knew there were others who were working on the same
promise. Our paths might be separate but we would simultaneously serve the same purpose.
I could feel the inspiration and influence of other Soul-minded people upon me. Our
manifesting within the same time is to connect and hold the all space for each other. Each with
unique ethics and perspective were subtly attuned, and like a silent whistle that awakens the one
whose turn is next, as soon as one comes into awareness, others follow. We may not connect the
way we think we should, but since we are part of the same Soul group, we have the ability to
influence each other’s world. Moreover, I believe that when we consciously remember our Soul
friends and are able to support each other with awareness, the payback is far more than we might
imagine.
Back in grade three we were asked to write a story, and mine was about a puppet from
the puppet’s perspective. It went like this- Magenta is the name of a puppet with a Soul. It is
Christmas and the puppet is sitting on the store shelf. Magenta patiently awaits her turn as many
around her are chosen, gift wrapped, and taken away. It is now closing time and no one has
come for her. At the last minute, a hand reaches out and grabs her and she too is wrapped in
That night she is placed under the most beautiful Christmas tree strung with white lights
angels and toys hanging on the branches. Magenta loves her new home, especially when Cedar,
the two month old German Shepherd puppy lies beside her under the tree, warming her with his
puppy breath. Here, she has a dream. At midnight when all is quiet and dark, she awakens to a
life of purpose and meaning. She walks out of her dream and finds the people and places she is
connected to and as she touches them she lights up their world with joy, strength, and love. She
brings peace and magic to each and every person. She fulfills her dream as she inspires others to
fulfill theirs. She manifests her desire to share love and peace and, upon completion of her
purpose, she merges into the night as she falls into a deep sleep.
The next morning, I met my friend, Edith, at Starbucks. While sipping on a green tea
latte, we discussed the possibility of writing a children’s storybook. The perspective would be a
puppet with a Soul whose purpose is to light up everyone’s world. I didn’t quite remember about
my prize-winning grade three story until we decided to call the puppet Magenta! I realized there
were several Magentas out there, ready to awaken from a deep sleep and resume the Soul
journey.
All Lights On
Each occurrence was awakening me to see and sense things in new ways. My visions
were confirming and revealing my inner truth. I was in wonder. When I turned inwards, I noticed
my body was like the Christmas tree with every cell lit in white light. I could feel the electrical
current flowing from one cell to another. All the cells were lit with the same intensity, all alive,
with memory, recognition, power, force, and will. It was now impossible to tell the original cell
from the copy. It was a long awaited miracle. All LIGHTS ON, and I was thrilled!
By this time, I had realized it was not my personal will working this wonder. Yes, I had a
dream. But this was so much more than what I could dream of. I remembered a night, two
weeks prior when I sat up writing until early morning. Around five o’clock as I gazed out the
big picture window of the living room, it was dark, and then in a split second, there was light.
All in one stroke, I had seen the first ray of light come in and the first streak of darkness
disappear. The fact that I had been able to catch a glimpse of the subtle and experience the first
rays of light and darkness made me part of the wonder. In form I was in touch with the formless.
And I had an inkling there was more to see. My subtle sense was developing; meaning I was
consciousness, energy and life force. When we are one with the continuum, we spontaneously
enter the space where we transcend it. Some call that the ‘gap’. The same principle must exist
between two lives, as in two thoughts and actions. My mind cried out for more! I felt it was
only a matter of time before I witnessed the journey of a Soul in one life and then another, the
wonder of reincarnation. The possibility was too good to be true, so before I killed it with my
thinking I decided to drop it, and revisit another matter that needed clarity. For this I would need
The subject was the Soul content. I was already well aware of the personas and how I
would use them to negotiate personal space. They were responses I had developed to cope with
input and response from others, and more for their benefit than mine. But without the awareness,
I could not see the flip side. Beneath the veil of each persona was the mature mind with reason
and purpose.
Until I discovered this truth, the persona protected my well being at the outer level and
was necessary for experiencing myself through the mind of others. It was also a survival tool to
preserve and protect my authenticity. But once I had seen and experienced my true self as Soul,
the mask automatically dropped; the need for self-preservation simply vanished. Once
connected at the source level, my persona would undergo a transformation and my personal code
of ethics to live from my full expression would emerge. We each carry a book of instructions
within us, much like a personal manual with a plan to sustain and maintain and optimize our
potential in the most effective way. It is a guide for our soul mechanics with a what-and-how-to-
do-it list. Awareness of the personal specifics keeps us squeaky clean, free and clear of inner and
outer toxicity.
It takes a high state of awareness to see subtle change occurring. One perceives from
their current level of awareness and when that level changes, they change. One cannot
comprehend their current reality. Like night and day, few can perceive or see light while it is
dark or dark while it is light, yet both co-exist. Coming into new awareness takes time but when
you do, it reveals itself as a new way of being. It is not necessary to consciously address the old
as it simply dissolves into the illusion. What remains are hard facts that are visible, true, and
I realized that spirituality is not just a tool for consciousness to manifest in the physical.
It has a transforming quality that can separate the gold from the dust; it can decipher the true
from the false. I could the feel the essence of this Soul intelligence within me. It is not ego that
causes us to believe we can live forever. Death is a higher state of awareness where Soul may
witness both the subtle and the physical. At death we shed our body and take on new dreams to
live our promise; the sequence does not break as we continue to live our intention. But we lose
the memory to know ourselves as one continuous being. We are consciousness and we know
that consciousness never dies. Physical death opens the portal to live our immortality repeatedly.
The more I saw, the more I was able to see. With interest, I noticed that everything was
in the light but I could only see what I could see. Despite having all lights on, I could only be
aware of what I was conscious of. Even though there was a lot more to see, nothing else was
visible to me. I could not see eternity but I could see in the moment. I realized the eye I had
developed could not experience eternity without living it one moment at a time. Wow! Here
was another closure for wanting to see more than necessary. I realized my desire to live eternally
was being manifested by living each moment. Each moment, in fact, was eternal. The need to
go forward and the reason to go backward both crashed and I found myself waking up from a
Chapter Fourteen
Living the Soul Promise
I first received the key to my Soul and my promise when Maji gave me the “Four Pillars
Meditation”. It had long been my secret desire to deliver a genius formula to unleash our full
potential and live an enlightened life. This meant a full and conscious connection with the
Source, intelligence, and life force to create and enjoy everything that Soul desired. I had
promised myself I would not rest until my mind and body had fully awakened. Once awakened,
I would then pass the torch to others. One by one, we would gradually light up our lives, our
This was not simply wishful thinking or my overactive mind; this wisdom came from
pure knowing. At times, it felt like I was romancing with idealism and building my foundation
on ideologies. This is natural when we think ahead. But my inspiration was rooted in
intelligence and awareness; I could recognize the signs and observe the patterns.
My dream was real and very doable, but it is only as good as the dreamer. So I would
build up the dreamer in order to house a bigger dream. Soon my Soul provided me with another
vision:
In an early morning meditation, I saw a gorgeous horse, healthy and sturdy with a
beautiful, full mane. The horse was tied and locked in a stable, neighing as it desperately tried to
break free. I immediately wanted to run and free the horse. But the fear of losing him and being
left with nothing held me back, so I stood watching the animal. Suddenly, I followed my
impulse. I ran to the stable, untied the horse, and even opened the gate. My guess was correct;
the horse took off at a gallop and within minutes vanished into the wilderness. But far from
being sad or afraid, I clapped my hands and jumped up and down with joy! I felt thrilled and
This vision was my Soul speaking to me, giving me valuable insight into my current state
within. Always cautious, I had feared expressing my true self and held on to my power. Letting
the horse go was my way of freeing my own life force, releasing the burden and stress of holding
on. I instantly felt strong, courageous and free in the letting go. Watching the horse disappear
brought me immense pleasure. I realized then I had been holding back to the point where the
I kept my attention on the feelings of letting go, and soaked in the vibrations for many
days after. I was aware that this internal vibration would soon manifest its physical match from
the external. This was my way of building my self up, along with the life of my dreams.
Next, Raj’s mastermind Soul group came to mind and I felt a tremendous pressure to go
within and consciously experience silence. There was something going on that still needed to
arise. When I thought of the evolved Souls with the common purpose, I knew I had a role to
play. It too would effortlessly emerge like the rising sun each day; all I had to do was to be
conscious and present. I had an inner sense that the tide was turning and we, in our human state
of consciousness, were headed for a mass transformation. It would call for every enlightened
mind to come together and join forces. Mystics, poets, philosophers, artists, teachers, writers,
scientists, and spiritualists along with healers would arise together to support and facilitate the
vision. A new gene pool would be created to facilitate greater awareness and perspective. I was
changes, but my perspective had changed subtly. I began to have spontaneous flashes and had
answers to age-old questions. It was like my antennas were hooked to a mega-computer with
unlimited memory and a super brilliant mind. This hook-up was making me environmentally
friendly and compatible. The peace centred me and with less stress, my instincts and intuition
I deeply regretted not being able to establish a conscious connection with Ma ji and Raj
before they crossed over. I realized that spiritual shyness was partly responsible for the non-
recognition. Although we share family, religion, politics, social values, and culture, we seldom
get to know each other. We communicate physically, emotionally, and intellectually but not
spiritually. Spiritual intimacy is not fostered or encouraged in most family and social situations.
Although the opportunity exists, we are not groomed to reach out and touch the unfathomable
spirit in each other. With neither the language nor the understanding, we hide our true feelings
and engage mostly through personas, seldom revealing our true self. In wanting to be righteous,
we undermine the power of our own authenticity and originality. Even though it was late, I
knew it was not too late; there was still more to come.
One day I was chatting with a friend over coffee, when our conversation turned to my
unfinished manuscript. “I wonder who else will come along to help me complete the book?” I
mused.
“I think it will be a young child who will guide me towards the end,” I answered
spontaneously.
Almost a month later, I was passing through Calgary and meeting my daughter Rachna
over lunch at Earl’s. We were catching up as I nibbled on my favourite Santa Fe salad with
grilled chicken.
About halfway through lunch, Rachna asked me if I had heard any more about Melissa.
As it happened, Rachna’s husband, Rohit, actually worked with Melissa’s father, Don. At the
very moment she asked, my cellphone rang. “Ruby, this is Julia…,” I heard her say. At the
exact same moment, Rachna’s phone rang. “Is Mom with you?” queried Rohit. “Don is sitting
here in my office and wants to talk to her.” Both Don and Julia had called me at the same
moment. I realized immediately it was exactly two months to the day since my last conversation
“Oh, I’m so glad you are in town,” exclaimed Julia. “We really need to talk with you
about our daughter, Melissa. It is like she is fifteen in the body of a seven –year old. She knows
a lot more than her age. She’s begun to have problems at school and we need some help in
knowing how to guide her in the best way possible.”Julia did not know what was wrong but she
This was the call I knew would come. As Julia spoke, I began to get images confirming
the information Monica had given me. I had a pretty good idea of what was about to come, so
with my heart pounding I prepared to enter the discussion I had been avoiding. I walked out of
“What kind of dreams does she have?” I asked, already looking for signs.
“Well, she flies a lot and goes places,” replied Julia. “She says she wants to help people
It was time and I did not hold back. “Julia, do you believe in reincarnation?” The words
“I could...do you think Melissa has lived before? Because if she has, it would certainly
With no hesitation, I made the leap. “Julia,” I said, “I believe I know your daughter from
And then I told her about Monica and her conversations with me. It was strange hearing
myself participate in a discussion where more than two parties and dimensions were involved
which had occurred as much in the past as it was now occurring in the present. I spoke clearly so
I would be understood.
“Have you read about the Tibetan Lamas?” I asked. “How they were recognized and
chosen by merit of their knowledge from previous lives to continue their Soul work? They
incarnated in the same type of intelligence, often returning to the same environment to fulfill
their spiritual calling. It would sometimes take them more than one lifetime to complete their
Soul purpose.”
“I think I know what you are talking about,” Julia said. “Don and I are completely open
The appointment was made. I would see Melissa along with both her parents Saturday
morning two days later. I was excited and began considering many ways to both witness this
miracle and, at some level, get proof that Monica and Melissa were the same Soul.
As I found myself becoming stressed and anxious, I decided to let go of wanting proof, to
test, or look for similarities. I decided to simply observe and let the chips fall where they may. I
When the doorbell rang Saturday morning at eleven sharp, I jumped from my seat to open
the door for young Melissa and her parents. And in the moment I first saw her, I knew instantly
that Monica had returned to life as young Melissa. It was all in her eyes. The force and the fire
in them was the same as Monica’s. As I took her hand, the physical contact hit me like bolt of
lightning. Currents of energy were running through my body and I began to shake. As I invited
Melissa quickly became comfortable and answered me easily as a seven year old would,
descriptively expressing her frustrations at home and school. When I asked about her dreams,
she told me she could fly in her dreams and visit other people. She said that in her sleep, she was
strong and had POWER, yet during the day she was not able to access this power. This confused
and frustrated her. She told me she could talk to the rain, sun, and clouds, and felt she had a
As she spoke, I listened carefully. Without her being aware, I asked the questions and
within seconds she would blurt out the information I was seeking. At one point in the
conversation, I silently requested to Monica that she give me more proof. Immediately, Melissa
held her head from both sides and said, “I can’t remember!” just the way Monica had done when
I asked if she remembered her Soul Purpose. This was a gesture that Monica had and Melissa
then demonstrated exactly same habit – and more than once. I realized I was looking at a person
who was almost identical to me, except she had clarity and an openness I did not have at her age.
For a few moments, I wondered if I was being tested and tricked into some wishful
miracle and falling prey to some delusion. But my skin, my largest organ, was confirming that
this was no psychotic interlude; I was in the presence of truth. Her facial expression, her words,
the configuration of her sentences, her gestures, and more than all that, her personal energy all
signalled she was Monica reincarnated. There was no doubt in my mind that Monica and
Melissa were the same Soul. At the same time, there was something about her desires, dreams,
and nature that were very much like mine. Her similarity to me too was uncanny and I wondered
I asked Melissa to name three flowers in the sequence that came first to her. Without
hesitation she blurted the answer. I was stunned. The three flowers in the sequence she chose
had special meaning for me. They were special codes from my Spirit Guides and teachers in the
subtle realm and were part of my healing work. No one but I knew their order and meaning.
“It can’t be,” was my first thought. And then, “Why not?” was my second.
She was born on the same day as me. I was still trying to understand, to put the puzzle
“We want to be part of a healing centre,” he began, and then proceeded to repeat word for
word Monica’s Soul dream, as she had shared it with me on her deathbed. Their dream was one
and the same. Monica had taken no chances. For a Soul about to reincarnate there could be no
smarter, more strategic move than this; to be born of parents with the same Soul purpose.
I was overcome, completely astounded. It was the biggest surprise of my life. I knew this
was not just a miracle but also my miracle. Unknowingly, I had been part of the greater design
and my lack of foreknowledge made it that much more awesome. In my life I had seen many
metaphysical miracles, but this one took the prize. I could never have imagined I would ever
experience this phenomenon in this life or any other. Indeed! I was part of a magical universe.
I remembered my days as a child in India when I slept in the open courtyard on hot
summer nights and stayed up not wanting to sleep so I could gaze at the stars. There was magic
in the stars, in the dark of the night, in the moon. Today I had experienced another kind of
magic- the magic of awareness. I had received the best gift possible, the gift of a lifetime. My
belief in eternal life was confirmed one more time. I could see the freedom we each have to
choose the incarnation, the space, and the environment to live out our Soul’s dream with
unparalleled genius. I had worked with this premise for many years, helping my clients connect
their chemistry and psychology with their history and roots and every time I would marvel at the
results.
It was a fairy tale story that every child believes is true. Now, I could savour the flavour
of never having to face death or a dead-end. The journey is one of endless transformation. The
only loss or disconnect could be one of lack of awareness and even if that occurs, we only have
to look at nature, plants, animals, everything physical including our own bodies. There is only
one guiding principle and all things in the universe adhere to that same principle. I laughed out
loud as I thought of being ‘forever green’, each and everything in us is recycled, nothing goes to
waste.
I was relieved to find this required no faith or even trust. I would often say to my clients,
“Don’t look outside but look inside for all the answers.” That which guides the external guides
the internal. There are not two Gods and one and only one principle governs all things big and
small. This is why I had established my inner lab to conduct my research. Everything about the
external was accessible from within my physical being. This brought me to the dream; if the
The session with Melissa was more like a session with truth or with God. To know,
witness and experience together are a potent mix for alchemy and if you then throw in the Soul,
I was back with Melissa enjoying her presence. After guiding her through a quick
meditation, for homework I gave her a vision, something simple and pleasant. Little did she
know, the playful vision was simply a way of stabilizing her in her current environment to
protect her from a premature awakening. I played it casual even when I was bursting at the
seams and after a few more practical suggestions, I bid the family farewell. I would share my
As I closed the door behind them, I felt a rush of energy shooting through me. I almost
lost my bearings but made it to the sofa where I collapsed. Electricity was rushing through me
and although my mind was calm, my body trembled and shook uncontrollably.
Then suddenly everything stopped and came to a grinding halt. In the midst of a warlike
turbulence, there was a silent force overpowering me and soon I fell into a sense-free stupor. For
the next three hours I was lost, either in sleep or some other deep state. When I awoke and found
a mirror, I could not believe what I saw. Just then, my daughter walked in the door and gasped.
“Mom, whatever happened to you? You’ve aged. You look ancient!” Poor Sona was in
shock. I looked ragged and old. My face seemed a skeletal structure with bones revealing what
was once a face. The three-hour sleep experience had had a severe effect upon my physical
body. I don’t know why or how it happened but because I could do nothing else, I retired to my
I awoke late at night with a high fever. Over the next two days, both my eyes were
swollen shut with an infection. Despite using prescribed medications, I could not see properly
for more than ten days. When it finally began to clear, I forced myself to sit at the computer and
write. It was tricky at first but by the second day I began to see more and more. Getting the
energy flowing again helped heal the situation and restored my sight.
I was still in awe of the miracle of human will. I felt like a prisoner who had been locked
away in a dark cell for many years and then suddenly released. Metaphorically, the sudden
exposure to the bright light had blinded me; I was unable to see. I kept rubbing my eyes trying
to adjust to the bright light. My life-long work and yearning to see beyond the veil had finally
manifested and in such a magical way. Monica had asked for a miracle; she wanted to live again
to complete her promise. Her dream was granted and as it was, so was mine. Now, I knew.
“Ruby, does a Soul have the choice to select the life it wants?” Monica had asked during
“Yes,” I had answered. “Soul has the freedom to choose. It can select the best parents
Monica had listened intently. I could see a glow, a hope, and a birth of desire in her
before she closed her eyes and drifted away. For a few moments, there was absolute silence and
I knew she had connected to something beyond. In that silence, I could feel the birth of intention
natural phenomenon just as death is, the Soul intention, promise, and strength carry forward
through the formless into form and is indeed a miracle. Death does not hold us back; rather it
provides a new opportunity to fulfill the promise with more experience, wisdom, and knowledge.
We move into a new possibility with a new outlook and a greater awareness. We know that
consciousness cannot die but seldom do we experience the flow of consciousness with full
awareness and when we do, we can see the unbroken chain of simultaneous occurrences.
These musings took me back to my own experiences and the five revelations I had of my
own past lives. It began with the hanged Indian woman, then the Korean marksman. Next was
the Japanese geisha dancer, followed by the old Chinese monk or healer, to the last one of the
young Tibetan boy in the monastery. Upon reflection, I could see pattern, intent, and purpose. I
wondered when I might have first set the intent and chosen the path to become fully conscious.
Although I had never before seen myself as a teacher, I was now seeing how I was
developing my life-long desire to manifest a recipe or a formula which would connect a person
to their Soul, the conscious mind and their enlightened state. I knew that all these states exist
within; it would be a simple matter to connect with them. I did not believe it would need much
work to create and connect with something already in the manifest. The connection would
become possible with a conscious mind. To me it was pure science, the science of the Soul, and
this science I would extend into the science of being. This would be my miracle.
“Ruby, you are one of the strongest Souls I will probably meet in this life.” These words
from a friend who was a poet, a word artisan, and a professor of English at the University of
Calgary, were true even though I did not believe him at the time. I had a strong will with which I
was able to support my strong desires and I served one master, my Soul.
I often saw images of Buddha sitting under the Bodhi tree with full awareness. He
tapped into an inner state; the enlightened state. He was seeking that which he already had, and
the happening, as spontaneous as it may seem, was pre-ordained; desired, intended, and planned.
He could not have escaped this experience even if he had tried; he was born with the genes and
the spiritual intelligence to be aware and enlightened. As death finds us, so too does
enlightenment.
experience. I could see the old stress melting away like hard ice from a mountain with the warm
light of the sun. I could not help but remember my time in Ladakh and Nepal. During my visit
to Ladakh, on the way up the mountain, I had been driven to a cave that had a monastery with a
Buddhist temple. The floor was lit with hundreds of tiny, clay oil lamps and in the midst of the
dark space stood a huge golden Buddha. After visiting the temple, I wandered off to the left.
There I found a smaller cave were at least forty young boys sat chanting and studying with the
monks. All of them had shaven heads and were wearing orange robes. From behind a thin cloth
curtain, I watched as they recited their chants. Fifteen minutes later they stopped and sat in
silence. Unbeknownst to them, I sat down on the cold floor and joined them in the silence.
Is there more? A thought then flashed through my mind. I wanted to retire, give up the
tiresome journey and return home. I wanted to rest in peace. This thought was soon replaced by
The experience of Monica and Melissa validated my research of many years. With the
new clarity it brought, I felt peace and was comfortable in my body and mind. Everything was
falling into place and making sense. I realized that everything I had chosen was in line with my
Soul purpose, including the good and bad relationships and even their timing. Each person had
come and gone as per my Soul needs. My physical and mental health and even disease had
brought the people and states I needed. My depression and isolation kept me uninvolved and
thus available to pursue the spiritual path. My financial losses and gains offered me specific
I never had more but I had more than enough to indulge. I could see that my life had
unfolded according to my core beliefs. My morals, ethics, and religion stemmed from choices I
had made as Soul, as did my dreams, desires, inspiration, and motivation. My entire life plan
had been masterminded by my Soul and as a result, I had experienced the world in my chosen
way. This new and full awareness left me feeling elevated like a light bubble floating in space.
I lost all urge to write and even to talk about the book. I knew I was nowhere near the
end but it didn’t matter; for now I would give up the burden of meeting deadlines. I had not
realized how much stress I endured trying to fulfill what I believed to be my Soul Promise.
“The promise was with God,” I thought. “Let God be stressed. Why me?”
I relieved myself and gave myself the permission to have fun and to play. And for over
Chapter Fifteen
Miracles and More Miracles
“Do I ever have a cocktail for you!” were the last words I heard from the
anesthesiologist, shortly before the doctor began my hysterectomy in Calgary Foothills Hospital.
“Let’s go for it,” I replied, confident this surgery would be an in-and-out visit to the
hospital from which I would leave stronger than before. Was I wrong! Four months later, I was
still struggling with complications from the surgery. While it was true the surgery rid me of the
initial stages of cancer, five days later I went home with symptoms I did not have before. Soon
after that I lost total control and was overtaken by fear and panic along with pain, fever, cough,
hypertension, and more. It was not long before I was rushed back to emergency and re-admitted
with a severe infection. Then it happened again, and then again. Apparently, I was one of the
rare cases who incurred kidney damage due to medical error. And as if this was not enough, I
There was more. While inserting the stent, the second surgeon managed to cut a hole in
my bladder which required yet another corrective surgery. All of these procedures were
accompanied by a cocktail of medications. The entire experience was just so bizarre. The drugs
in my system caused my brain chemistry to go totally out of balance resulting in a total loss of
control over my mind and body. Thanks to these drugs, my heightened awareness and ability to
“see in” turned into delusions as the other worlds blended into this one. I would look at a picture
and see the images in it come to life and begin to move. I could easily see the whole multi-
dimensional aspect of the universe and I thought I was totally losing my mind.
While trying to cope with all this, I received much love and support from family, friends
and even from some wonderful women I had never met before. In addition to lots of prayer, they
helped me through Healing Touch, Reiki, and EFT. They took turns to be with me at all times, it
It was 2008, and I was now free of the risk of cancer and in that sense, I was lucky. As I
began to heal, I found much gratitude in the simple feeling of well-being. And, as with all
profound experiences, I was changed by this one. Somehow, I was left with a sharper focus and
was more attuned to what was occurring around me. I now anticipated events with a new kind of
preparedness.
But in addition to that, I became acutely aware of the timing and how every moment is
precious. This physical life can end at any unknown moment. I’d had absolutely no control over
any of these events as they unfolded. I, who was accustomed to caring for and holding others
through their pain, needed to be cared for and held through this pain. I was left with a new and
profound humility and the awareness of how little time we actually have here to do what we
Horace’s Story
This saga certainly shook me before the infection finally cleared, and it was several
months before I began to find peace again. Then one day while I was at home recuperating, I got
“Are you ready for some work?” he asked. “My friend, Horace, could really use your
help.”
Horace (not his real name) arrived at my place, accompanied by his wife and his in-laws.
He was a scientist and I soon discovered he had a way with words! It took him an enormous
number of words and at least thirty minutes just to explain how he found me and we were still
nowhere close to the reason why. I realized that, as much as he wanted help, he was even more
in need of confirming some of his powerful experiences. But he was secretive and for some
“Stop!” I finally interjected. “Horace, please just answer my questions.” I was direct
“Horace, I don’t like what I see. It’s like you have been jolted with light and lost your
equilibrium. The shock must have impacted your power to observe. I have no doubt your
experience is true but I am afraid it has shattered your nervous system and it feels like you are on
the verge of a breakdown. I sense you are trying to protect your story but I need to protect you
Horace continued to share his truth. His experience was indeed extraordinary. He had
literally been hit by light. A few years ago, he narrated, while working in Hawaii, he met a
fellow scientist with similar interests and they became good friends. Joining forces, they decided
to work on some mind-boggling technological breakthroughs. During their long escapades, they
shared time, secrets, and more. Eventually Tom (not his real name) revealed his true identity. A
true genius with early PhDs when he was still very young, NASA had scooped him up for special
assignments. One of these was to communicate with light beings and for many years he did just
that. As he communicated with these light beings, he was able to access new intelligence in the
most unique ways. How this intelligence was used was kept secret from all except for the few
directly involved in this top-secret operation. If Tom were to reveal even the slightest bit of
“Why are you telling me this Tom?” asked a bewildered but thrilled Horace. “Why, after
so many years of secrecy, are you risking everything you worked for by talking to me?”
“Horace,” replied Tom, “I already know too much. It’s only a matter of time before I am
removed; I mean taken out. My life is at risk. I need to share my Soul with someone before I
go. Besides, I want to manifest my dream of building this unique technology and the project I
alone have held close to my heart for so long. I trust that after me, you are the person who can
complete my dream. After I divulge some of the secrets and take you into my space, you could
Tom then shared with Horace all kinds of proof including photographs. He also showed
Horace the diagrams and drawings of a new technology he was inspired to develop.
“Ruby, you must promise to never reveal this project and design to anyone.”
“I promise,” I replied. “You can trust me Tom. Your secret is safe with me.”
Now reassured, Horace began to share all he had brought to show me, including the
photographs with Tom at work. But by this point I needed no proof; I could sense the truth in
him. He told me Tom had offered him a job which was to begin in February but fifteen days
“Tom is dead!” she cried. “I found him in his rocking chair, bleeding. When his doctor
showed up they took the chair and his computer. Horace, Tom wanted you to have some papers
I could only imagine Horace’s shock. It was only a few months ago and Horace was still
suffering from anxiety, panic, and insomnia. His secret had become a huge source of stress, as
he had no idea how to manifest his joint dream with Tom. In addition, Horace had become a
channel for an unknown source and could not keep up with all the information coming through.
Despite his new heightened intuition, he was going crazy and losing his balance. And, as if this
was not enough, based on what was coming through, he knew that somehow there was urgency
The plot got thicker when I noticed we were not the only ones in the room. I soon
realized I was engaged in a multi-dimensional communication with more than just Horace. Tom
had also joined us from the other side and was actively participating. Even though I was
accustomed to this type of communicating, there was something different this time. However, as
much I was curious, I had an obligation to Horace and his well being came first.
“You must stop all communication and channelling until you are stronger and more in
control,” I spoke firmly. “Horace, you have already lost the ability to switch off. You are on
Horace’s wife, Kim, had been just waiting for this opportunity and was quick to interject.
“Horace, please listen to Ruby. She knows what to do and how to help us.” Kim then proceeded
to share some of the events and a series of synchronicities and guidance that was now coming
through, not just to Horace, but the entire family! There was proof and more proof.
Now I was even more sympathetic and committed to supporting Horace. I realized this
was no coincidence. Horace was meant to encounter Tom and become the channel for some
special information. It was part of his calling to fulfill his and Tom’s dream and share the unique
“Horace, I want you to start to journal everything in third person and this will help
separate you from the event,” I said. “It will also help create balance and restore your observing
skill. In this way, you can be an effective channel without you getting in the way. As it is now,
the information is filtered through your attached state so it becomes tainted with your personal
limitations.”
I then gave him a few visions to connect him to a peaceful state and clear his mind-space
and help him receive and transmit information rapidly and efficiently. This would not stress his
“I promise to support you in your life’s work, but you must listen to me and follow all the
advice I give you,” I stressed. “In this way, you will not lose your mind but in fact, you will
There was much more but sharing it all was not my place. As Horace and I continued to
work together, I was able to confirm many of the messages he was receiving with my own skills.
Using the techniques I gave him, Horace began to sleep and be more restful, and regain his
balance.
He is writing his story as it comes through but always in the third person. Much of it
pertains to the upcoming events around the year 2012. At the time of this writing, his story is not
yet complete but he continues to turn to me for support and balance when he needs it. He
attended a few of my meditation circles and no longer feels troubled. I have recommended that
he publish his work as ‘fiction’. Those who are ready will see the truth in it.
After my first session with Horace, I was not shocked or even surprised, rather I felt like
a child in a toy store. I could sense a freeness and joyfulness. Something in me was happy and
fun; it felt like playtime. That night after my meditation, I felt a set of eyes staring at me.
Within five feet of me just near the foot of my bed sat a little light being.
“Cute! When did you come?” I asked. I waited for an answer but there was none, only
silence. “You must have come with Horace or Tom, or maybe you were always within me; I just
I soon realized I was talking into silence; there was no body or thing there, just a
I didn’t need to wait any longer. “I will call you Kishmish. Yes, that will be your name
This was fun, no word, thought, or feeling, no thing, not even a being-ness. There was no
feeling of presence, not even awareness; no mind, no observer; just a visual. If I forced myself
to describe it I would call it a pattern of Lightless Light. Even the word intelligence would
weigh it down.
By the way, Kishmish is the Indian name for raisin, and a perfect fit for this cute thing. I
grabbed a piece of paper and wrote the following: “Thank you Kishmish, I have come through
Over the next few weeks I wrote several Kishmish notes. It was my way of connecting
with the absence of weightiness and the stresses of not just living, but being in human form. The
emergence of Kishmish, and me being conscious of it, was a sign of the changing times. I knew
that after this inner shift, the external shift was imminent. I was joyful and full of pride; I hung
onto my new friend like a new sense; with no taste, smell, or feel, not even memory, it was just
an experience. I had no urge to describe it any further than that. I loved secrets and this was one
of them. However, I did speak about it to my professor friend, Dr. NKO, in India who
A few days later, I felt inspired to visit the books in my meditation room. Moving from
left to right, I looked at all the books neatly arranged in rows on the shelves. Rachna had colour-
coded them and it was interesting to see the blues with the greens and browns with the reds. I
giggled at the thought of how two authors sitting side by side on my shelf would never be caught
dead with each other. Gandhi’s Freedom at Midnight sat next to David Simon’s Enlightened
Sex. Aha! While one may not think so, even the most unrelated can be related. I had read
somewhere that Gandhi was making love to his wife while downstairs in the same house his
father was breathing his last. And what do you think Gandhi did when he heard the news? I was
not surprised to find these two books next to each other on my shelf. I noticed a few books out
of order and as I was pulling them out, one single book fell to the floor.
Picking it up, I noticed it was The Mad Cowboy by Howard F. Lyman. Inside was
scribbled a hand-written message, “Ruby, you have changed my life. I view you as my guide. I
love you now and always. Howard Lyman”. Closing the book, I sat down on the chaise lounge
and held it to my chest. A gentle breeze blew through the branches of the big tall spruce outside
the window and the sweet sound of twittering birds was just enough to whiff me back over
“Good morning, Ruby! I have a favour to ask.” This was typical of my friend, Valerie.
She was one person who had unconditionally supported me for many years, wanting nothing in
return. There were times when she wanted a favour but it was always for someone else. And so
“Howard Lyman, the famous animal activist, a Montana rancher turned vegetarian, is our
guest speaker for Earth Save and the Vegetarian Society. He has just arrived from the U.S. and I
am right now driving him to the radio interviews. He has an important message to share and a
fascinating story. I told him about you and he wants to meet with you. He has time before his
“Of course, Valerie, bring him to the office at three. And if I like him, I may just make it
to the presentation tonight.” Although I was not much involved with Valerie’s affiliations, once
in a while I would accompany her for the love of food and my interest in inspirational matters.
At three sharp, I opened the door and in walked a tall, heavy, broad-shouldered man with
“I am Howard Lyman and you are Ruby, just like I thought you would be,” he said.
“Valerie dropped me here; she has some errands to run before the presentation this evening.”
“Of course,” I smiled and stood on my tippy toes to hug him. The hug was more of a
transmittance of tons and tons of gentle lovingness. I felt like a cub in the arms of the mother
lioness; it was a feeling of returning home. We sat across from each other for what seemed quite
a while, just looking at each other. Usually, silence like this can be a bit unnerving, but not this
time. There was a strange togetherness and we both knew we knew each other. This recognition
removed any distance or separation there may have been between us. There was nothing I
needed to say and instead Howard said, “We are Soul friends.”
Big tears flowed down his shiny, rosy cheeks as he held my hand and said in the softest
voice, “Who looks after you while you look after so many?” It was not a question but a deep
concern.
“God,” I said, shrugging my shoulders like a young girl. I could taste the salt in my tears.
“True, I can feel it, my friend. We have known each other for a long time even though
This was no session; it was a heart to heart talk between two Souls with a common
destiny. It was obvious that Howard was awakened and aware of his purpose and his promise
and like me, he also felt the compulsion to share his message with others. It reminded me of the
Soul groups who come together to create awareness and conscious understanding through
different mediums. They hold a space for and support each other unconsciously and
occasionally, consciously. Most of the time, their non-physical alignment and connection
remains unknown. I had experienced Souls who were silent conduits for others, even though in
my case, through meditative practices, I had prepared the space and alignment for my support
I had once written a story of a king who, proud of his continuous victories, became
ruthless and arrogant. When his son, his only heir to the throne, falls sick and is dying, the king
prays to God for his son’s health and has a vision. In his vision, he sees many hand folded in
prayers, these were his soldiers and their loved ones, beside this he sees that a group of sages
were supporting him silently. Their conscious connection to the source and the king had
provided the king with good intuition, power, and strength, and even what seemed like good
luck. When the king suddenly realized that behind his success was the hand of many others
including the sages, he then turned to God and asked, “Why Me? Why couldn’t one of these
Souls be in my position and I in theirs?” God answers, “Because it is your turn.” Remembering
My coming together with Howard; the instant affection and love, the unconditional
giving and, of course, his physical presence and vibe were all signs that Howard had come to me
for a reason and I needed to fully support him. Despite being aware of our connection, I did not
realize at that time what an impact our meeting would have and how it would turn the hands of
the cosmic clock to create events that would influence the environment and the lives of so many.
“First, I must tell you about myself,” he began. “I had everything; a big ranch, hundreds
of head of cattle, and much more. I wanted to expand and I did what I could to achieve success.
Everything was going well and then suddenly I was struck down. I became paralyzed from the
waist down because of a tumour on my spinal cord. I think it was God’s way of bringing me to
my knees and humbling me. The doctors said they would try to remove it but if the tumour was
on the inside of the spinal cord, the odds of walking again were less than one in a million. In the
twelve hour operation that followed, it turned out the tumour was on the inside of the cord. But I
walked out of that hospital and when I did, I was a very changed man. Before the operation, I
committed that the rest of my life I would do what I thought was right, whether I could walk or
not.”
“While in hospital, I had an experience that opened my eyes and afterward, I saw
everything differently,” he spoke with concern. “I could see the potential dangers to our
environment, humans, animals, and our earth. This is when I decided to warn others and inform
them of responsible choices. I believe that, one person at a time, we could make the change and
save our planet. I am only the messenger. I simply present facts so people can make informed
Howard was very well informed; he shared his concerns, making special mention of Mad
Cow Disease. His fear was genuine; it could be disastrous if we did not make some conscious
changes. The urgency he felt to spread his message was making him restless and that is what
“Ruby, I could use some help. I have been travelling and sharing this message with small
groups in several cities. I’ve been using my own personal funds to spread the message but I only
have so much. And I don’t have much time; I know we are heading towards a crisis. I must do
“I know what you mean,” I replied. “You cannot accomplish your mission this way. It’s
too slow. Let me see what I can do to get this message to the masses in the shortest time
possible.” Closing my eyes, I focused on Howard’s Soul script to see how I could best work
with his specific gifts. Within minutes my eyes popped open with the answer.
“Howard, I have an idea, a shortcut. It may be a way to get your message to millions of
people in one go,” I said. I knew it would be a bit tricky but I knew I could pull it off with the
help of some friends. But, before I got ahead of myself, I needed to check something. I was
giggling like a teenager just at the thought. I could hardly hold on to the secret.
Howard’s face lit up; he broke into a big smile, “What is it?”
Focusing inwardly, after a few minutes, I came up with the plan. I had consulted with my
friends, the elements, and with their help I felt we could spread the message like wildfire, almost
“Howard, most people are not conscious that the elements have intelligence. I learned a
long time ago to communicate with the spirit of things, including the elements, and befriend
them. Once you set up and preserve the inner connection, the impossible becomes possible.
Without personal effort, what seem like miracles and wonders become part of everyday reality.
“Your message must benefit everyone, I mean the entire universe, all things living, big
and small. You cannot hurt anyone or anything when delivering the message and you can put
down nothing and no one in order to lift yourself. However, after checking your Soul script, I
know you are honest and truthful and will work with integrity and that is why you will have the
support you need. I just needed to inform you of the conditions. Do you know what I mean?” I
“Howard, I can create a special vision that will awaken the gifts you need to accomplish
your mission. You will have to experience the vision twice a day for one month. It does not take
long, all you must do is imagine and feel the story I will tell you. Once you experience the story
within, it will start to work for you. With this vision you will be heard and it will also create the
opportunity to speak with millions of people. I mean it will take you into the space where you
“Suddenly!” I smiled. “Of course, you will simply be the instrument. It will happen
through you but without too much money and effort. You will be at the right place, at the right
time, with the right person, and it will just happen!” Then with a smile I added, “Don’t worry, it
will all happen as scripted. There are no accidents in the universe. However, conscious
“Ok, this may sound weird to you but to me it is not. I do this all the time for my clients
and I’ve always had positive results. The elements are my friends; I have a pact with them; I
never hurt or abuse them, and they, in turn, make anything possible for me. I only have to ask.
But you don’t actually need to understand all this. If you do your envisioning, your job will be
done. My friends, especially air and space, will effectively and promptly transmit your message.
I suspect it will be through television and it might take three to four months. But you must
promise to convey your message gracefully. This means you will not pollute the air or space
with words or deeds that could hurt anyone or anything. Keep it clean and do it with respect and
“I promise I will convey my message with respect. I am just making people aware and
“There is one more thing. This vision will be a one-time deal. There will be one
opportunity. You will have a short time to present your views, after which this opportunity may
not repeat itself. But from this will arise many smaller but effective opportunities. In other
words, you’ll be able to leverage this one for a long time to come.
“Hmm, okay, I think I have explained it all. I’m ready to give you the vision if you are
“Yes, I’m ready.” Howard closed his eyes and adjusted his posture for comfort. Then I
guided him through the vision. I could feel his state change as he entered a deeper Soul
dimension. The vision was intended to connect him to his vital core, memory, and presence
where he would access intelligence and other gifts needed to fulfill his purpose. The vision
would also align him with the elemental power for accelerated results. After the vision, I let him
soak in the “centredness” for quite a while. When he opened his eyes, there were tears rolling
“Ruby, you have the gift; God is with you.” He kept looking at me and then very
humbly, he said, “Please tell me what I can do for you. Is there anything at all that you need?”
“Do you promise to call me if you ever need anything? I will give you my numbers.
While Howard waited for his ride to show up, he gave me his numbers and told me about
his family. “I will bring Willow Jean, my wife, next time; she would love to meet you.”
Before leaving, he asked if I would conduct a meditation that evening after his
presentation. “I am honoured and I will be there,” I promised. I was excited. It is not always
That evening after his presentation, Howard introduced me as a close friend. I took over
from him and guided everyone through a meditation I had created just for that evening. I began
by saying, “Friends! Howard has shared his truth; it is time for us to experience ours. I will
guide you in the silent space within where you can be one with yourself, your own truth.”
When Howard left, he took with him a piece of my Soul; I willingly offered it to him
common destiny.
I heard from him a few months later when he visited Calgary; this time he brought his
wife along. And then after some time I heard the news from Valerie.
“Howard was on Oprah!” She was ecstatic. “You won’t believe how it happened and
what happened on the show. When Howard told her about how cows were being turned into
cannibals by eating other cows, Oprah said this information had stopped her cold from eating
another hamburger. Beef sales have plummeted and there is just a huge uproar over it all.”
“Noooo! I don’t believe it,” I laughed out loud. “Wow God, I love the way you move
and shake the world without lifting even a finger. You are truly great!”
Ever since my awakening, I have been told by many clients and friends, “You have to be
on Oprah,” or “I had a dream, I saw you on Oprah.” And just like Howard, I wanted to share my
message with as many people as I could. I felt I was running out of time and energy and Oprah,
of course, would have provided the space for it. But it did not happen for me, at least not that
way. But Howard got what he wanted which was the opportunity to share his concerns with
millions at one go. I’m sure if Oprah knew what this one episode would bring, she would never
have invited him on. But had she not invited Howard and made those now famous comments,
she would never have experienced the trial, she would never have met the people she did, never
have learned the lessons she learned, never spent the hours, days, and months in a courtroom,
and so forth. All this and more resulted with this one episode. Howard became the instrument
for her to experience events and life-lessons, and in the process he too must have felt the heavy
I love promising stories like this. They have passion, purpose, mystery, and challenge,
and they display all sorts of emotions - compassion, love, anger, and frustration, not to mention
greed. And more than this, there are millions of dollars at stake; money get redistributed from
one hand to another. There is no escape from stress and anxiety and, of course, no story is
complete without the victim, a saviour, the masses and a judge and jury.
The “Whodunit?” part is the most intriguing to me, a mystery that is seldom solved in
real life. It seems that each story has a beginning and an end, whereas in my experience, I could
not find the beginning or the end. All stories are timeless; they run concurrently in time and
space characterizing roles and content best suited for that particular time. The cast will change,
so will the stage appearance, but the message will not change much from before. The elements
keep churning the same cycles in a periodic manner; the cause and effect illusion keeps building
the mystery, and we keep buying into the concept of time, and individualism rather than
experiencing the collective and the timelessness. Only when the veil of ignorance lifts and the
illusions are broken, we move shift duality and become one with the continuous play of
consciousness.
I am pretty sure this story too is not yet over. In time, another epidemic related to this
very subject will rise, the story will continue bringing the past alive, Howard’s message will
again be repeated, and Oprah will be quoted, but then these two would have been replaced by
Since then, I have met Howard a few more times. After he was on Oprah, his message
went out far and wide. He authored The Mad Cowboy and another book. I am sure a major
crisis of Mad Cow disease was averted and some regulatory measures have been implemented,
Once, he stayed at my home and again he asked if there was anything he could do for me.
My answer was the same, “No, but I will call you when I need you.” Up until now, I have never
once consciously reflected upon the story. But once I did, I felt a sudden expansiveness. I
realized the life I keep trying to live, I have lived. The message I wanted to share with others, I
have. Not in words or concepts but through energy, intelligence, awareness and purpose with
many others. Part of my purpose is conscious recognition of the Soul and the personal role in the
grand cosmic orchestration. Each story has an unknown factor and is often written off as fate but
fate too has a face. I see in myself and everything else. It is the face of God.
Putting the book down, I sat quietly in contemplation. I realized my story would not have
been complete without their witness and quickly made a note to write to each of them. I wanted
to know if they were conscious of the effects of this single event upon their own self and others.
It is easy to get caught in the external and lose perspective of the internal. This would support my
I had the urge to internalize and attract a vision for myself. Soon, I started to experience
trillions of molecules floating in space; free and independent, tumbling, rolling and dancing in
themselves. Soon they were being pulled together by a magnetic force creating the illusion of
shape and form. I watched them come together and then disperse. I started to play with the
molecules; placing intention upon them and then letting go. With my will, I could affect the
movement and the configuration of the light molecules. The vision expanded, my awareness
shifted inwardly, and what was external was now being experienced internally. My being was
filled with light molecules floating freely throughout the space. Their movement was random
until I consciously willed them into shape; even gravity could not pull them down.
I realized that the conscious state is inclusive of will and power to hold the forces with
specific purpose and intention. The will of man falls weak unless it is aligned with the higher
will. And then only then, human state will become a sovereign state.
To You, My Reader:
“Seldom, comes an era where the physical, mental, social, environmental, and spiritual align in
harmony with the stars and planets, and galaxies of universes open up converting possibilities
into reality, And that time has come: It is NOW!
There are two miracles. The first is the human being and the second is the purpose for
being human. Both of these miracles are creations of our super-conscious mind. We live in an
animated universe where everything is alive and alert; if we cannot see, feel, or experience it, the
handicap is ours. In every chapter of this book, I have shared a story and even though the story
is mine, it will connect to some part of your unique story. My intention is to make you conscious
of your entirety and take you into the forgotten world that bears your footprints and awaits your
presence. Once you enter that world, you will need no more. That is my promise.
At present, I spend my time between Calgary and Ambergris Caye, Belize, where I live
on a semi-private island backing onto a bird sanctuary. A long time ago, a Tarot card reader saw
me living on the ocean. “This is where you will find both the gold and your Soul,” she had said.
This has come to pass, although I found my Soul first, and then found the perfect paradise to
hang out in. And as for the gold, I found it just the way I wanted to. I have created a
breakthrough in the field of personal development and conscious evolution working with the
Soul perspective. I call it “Inlighten Me Experience”. This process works with the physical body
to awaken the Soul light and the force to know one’s true identity and the Soul purpose. It turns
on the switch to ignite will and power to create from one’s own gift of uniqueness to the fullest
potential with less stress and more success. Keeping in mind that every person dreams their
world be rich with loving relationships and healthy body and mind and that there contribution at
every level be recognized, this process offers more than one needs and desires. Dreams are
unutilized potential, and this is evident to those who have experienced this process. This was my
gold.
Inder’s inspiration has taken form as Brahma Blue Holistic Oasis, a health and wellness
spa resort on the Caribbean island, the only Green Community on Ambergris Caye, Belize. This
Oh, Yes! About Melissa - the other day I got a call from her mother. “Guess what?” she
said. I just completed a Vaastu course in Seattle and am ready to start my practice. The kids are
“Michelle, can I please have a watermelon martini?” I asked the waitress, as I sat on the
side deck of the water-top restaurant, Blue Lotus at Brahma Blue, looking into the night sky.
The stars shone brightly; they were so close I felt I should reach out and touch them. My friend,
the night breeze, was fondling my big, brown curls, twisting and playing with them and I let it.
“You too, my friend are free to experience the lusty senses and life’s simple most
pleasures. You can blow or flow as per your will.” I think she heard my whisper.
Suddenly, the clouds spread their wings as they often do in the Caribbean summers and
big drops of rain fell from the sky. The thunder and lightning did not hold back; they too joined
the party.
“Miss Ruby! It’s pouring, please come in,” Michelle called, pulling me back.
“Michelle, the only thing missing here are big, juicy mangoes. This rain takes me back to
my home in New Delhi, where I lived as a teen. I loved sucking on mangoes in the rain.”
“Well then, Miss Ruby, here’s one for old times,” said Michelle from behind the bar, as she
Ruby Bedi has been called a spiritual guide, mystic, counsellor, and iconoclast. Since
1992 she has been transforming lives through dialogue, visions, past lives, meditation, and
intuition. Born in India, before age four she changed her given name to Ruby, announcing that
this name best fit her purpose. This was her first act of free will, she says.
With sharp intuition in her early years, she could connect and communicate inwardly
with almost anyone and anything. The Bedi household commonly played host to many sages,
yogis, and enlightened beings. Thus, growing up in the company of the wise, Ruby quickly
recognized that her way of thinking was unique and she was different from those around her. In
order to preserve this uniqueness, she set aside a space in her mind for reflection and
introspection. She later called it her “Mind Lab” and it became the birthplace of her insights,
In her late teens, Ruby relocated to Canada. Her avid search for truth attracted
experiences both challenging and dangerous, yet she continued on a self-prescribed journey with
a knowing that one day she would find the unique purpose and reason for her existence. She was
always aware she was being led, guided, and protected by a greater force. After a shattering
spiritual breakthrough in 1992, she closed the door to her retail business overnight and, for the
next decade, worked exclusively as a spiritual consultant, guiding individual clients on their soul
Then in 2005, while channelling her energy into real estate developments, Ruby had a
second awakening that revealed to her the guiding insights for The Soul Promise, her second
book.
Today, Ruby provides guidance, meaning, and transformation to clients across North
America and abroad through private sessions, workshops, and mass healing events. She is a
popular radio and television guest and with her razor-sharp intuition and unique ability to
connect people with their Soul Purpose, she inspires audiences whenever she speaks.